THE SUBJECTIVITIES OF BENEVOLENCE : SOCIAL RESPONSIBILITY AND CIVIL GOVERNANCE IN TIANJIN , 1911 - 1949 By John J. Somerville A DISSERTATION Submitted to Michigan State University in partial fulfillment of the requirements for the degree of History - Doctor of Philosophy 2016 ABSTRACT THE SUBJECTIVITIES OF BENEVOLENCE: SOCIAL RESPONSIBILITY AND CIVIL GOVERNANCE IN TIANJIN , 1911 - 1949 By John J. Somerville This dissertation represent the international and trans - local influences that reshaped the ethics of social responsibility in ear ly twentieth century Tianjin, China. The complex relationship between national identity, diverse civil governance, and institutional legitimacy form the the Tianji n Chamber of Commerce and its philanthropic work, analyzes transformations in urban policing that presented new expectations placed on state institutions, and examines the journalistic responses to two significant regional disasters that involved the city in 1917 and 1920. The second chapter centers on the powerful effects of Nationalist discourse on social welfare even in the absence of strong state institutions using communications between different branches of the municipal government and multiple non - st ate actors to reveal new ways that civil society interpreted and transmitted state ideologies. The third chapter takes a step back from Tianjin to talk about how the secular and spiritual aspects of philanthropy overlapped and reacted to one another in the context of growing nationalism and anti - Japanese sentiment, arguing that small religious associations could have a significant impact on shaping the contours of institutional relief. The concluding chapter examines the conflicting outcomes of philanthrop ic work under Japanese occupation and discusses the intimate responses of the nationalist government to refugee suffering as bureaucratic control dissolved towards the end of Copyright by JOHN J. SOMERVILLE 201 6 v ACKNOWLEDGEMENTS Reflecting on the past few years of this project, I have come to recognized a deep sense of gratitude and warm affection for the many partners and teachers along the way . I am thankful for their persistence, support, critique, and continual friendship. No one deserves greater appreciation and recognition than my primary advisor , Aminda Smith. Dr. Smith cultivated my interest in urban history and opened to me an incredible world of Whether the countless hours meeting with me in her office, or the urgent Skype calls while researching in Tianjin, or the many kind conversations of encouragement, Dr. Smith crafted my passion for Chinese history towards professionalism and enhanced my critical perspective. Her accessible demeanor and exceptional scholarly and teaching achievements make Dr. Smith a most worthy paragon of graduate advising. I have been richly blessed to have worked with her. I also could not have asked for better mentors than my secondary field advisors, Drs. Charles Keith, Ethan Segal, and Edward Murphy who each provided guidance and support while pushing me to craft better questions, hone my writing and theoretical framework, and develop my skills as a n educator . Their serious engagement with my emerging ideas cultivated both my scholarly confidence and maturity . I hope this work will honor the ir significant investment and the diverse intellectual herita ge I have gained from each of them. Their high expectations pushed me well beyond what I thought I could accomplish. I am also grateful for the support of our graduate chair, Dr. Walter Hawthorne, and Associate Dean, Dr. Pero G. Dagbovie for cheerfully he lping me to navigate many professional and administrative hurtles , and track down opportunities for vi research and teaching. In addition , I would like to t hank MSU Asian Studies librarian, Wu Xian, for his help in accessing the Chinese language digital collections, and introducing me to a host of contacts in Tianjin. Personally, I owe a great deal to my fellow graduate students at MSU; Tim Weber, Elizabeth Dutridge - Corp, and Liao Zhang, who shared ideas, commented on drafts, and became dear friends. Generous t ravel grants from Michigan State University funded several productive weeks of research at the YMCA Archives at the University of Minnesota in 2013, and preliminary dissertation research in Tianjin and Beijing along with a summer language scholarship from FLAS in 2011 . Many thanks are also due to the program directors and support staff of the China Fulbright Fellowship which funded a year of research in Tianjin. Janet Upton, Han Bing, and Jonathan Akeley of IIE provided exceptional support, encouraged scholarly exchange and opened a network of colleagues abroad. In Tianjin, Dr. Ren Yunlan from the Tianjin Academy of Social Science Research gave me access to primary source materials, and furnished numerous research opportunities . At Nankai University, Dr. Hou Jie shared his personal storehouse of material, guided my research, invited me to his weekly seminar courses and helped me gain access to several archives. Special thanks to Hou Yawei and Wang Weiwei, fellow g raduate students who took time from their own dissertation work to share resources, meals, and good cheer. To the Metro Detroit Chinese Alliance Church, I am grateful for all your support and encouragement at the final stages of this project. In particu lar, Shu Jen, who tirelessly helped me to navigate the many subtleties of wenyan wen , and whose humor and empathy helped carry me to the end. Thanks to Diane and Jean who helped keep me vii from becoming a hermit during the long hours of writing. And my fami ly , for their continual confidence, reassurance, and help . Lastly, I extend all love and gratitude to my wife Xiaoqing, for her encouragement , faith, and love . You have worked selflessly to support our family and have made the completion of this work possible. I could not ask for a better partner on this journey. And , to my son, John, whose laughter, curiosity, and playfulness have kept my spirits high . This dissertation is dedicated to you. This study uses pinyin viii TABLE OF CONTENTS LIST OF TABLES x LIST OF FIGURES xi KEY TO ABBREVIATIONS xiv INTRODUCTION 1 CHAPTER 1: FAMINE AND FLOOD TWIN CRUCIBLES FOR CHANGE IN THE PUBLIC SPHERE, LATE QING THROUGH THE BEIYANG GOVERNMENT ERA 1895 1927. 13 . 17 Profit and Misfortune: The Tianjin Chamber of Commerce . 18 Tianjin Police and Confucian Benevolence . 57 Competing Voices: Reporting on 1917 Flood and 1920 Famine . 69 Charity as Nationalism . 74 In the Sympathetic Eye: International Relief in the North China Famine . 80 CHAPTER 2: CONSOLIDATION AND THE NANJING DECADE, 1928 - 1937 . 9 2 Nanjing Perspectives on Welfare in Government Memoranda . 95 Declaring the Rights of Men, Women and Children . 102 Raising Funds and the Benefits of Giving . 107 A Decade of Bureaucratization . 116 The Language of Suffering . 117 The Department of Public Health . 121 Winter Relief . 123 Tianjin City Vagrant Shelter . 125 . 127 Provincial Level Disaster Relief Work . 136 Unlikely Benefactors: Gendered Charity and the Modern Woman T ianjin Jiliangsuo . 138 Tianjin Police: Critical Agents of Social Relief . 159 Evidence of Agency: Mutual Aid Associations and Self Organized Relief . 166 International Connections: Relief Work in the Nanjing Decade . 172 Far from . 181 CHAPTER 3: FASHIONING A MODERN ETHIC: RELIGIOUS INSTITUTIONS AND INDUSTRIAL WELFARE IN TIANJIN. 185 Christianity and Public Health Advocacy . 188 ix Christian Models of Social Welfare 191 Christian Relief Work in China: The Interdenominational Melting Pot . 199 Towards a More Christian Industrial Order in China . 205 YMCA Labor Investigations . 218 War Relief, Patriotism, and Solidarity . 225 Sinicizing Western Charity . 235 CHAPTER 4: COLLABORATION AND RENEWED VISION: FROM JAPANESE OCCUPATION TO U.S. AID IN POST - WAR TIANJIN, 1937 1949. 242 Post - Occupation Refugee Relief . 248 Individual Requests . 252 The International Settlement and Wartime Relief . 258 Welfare Under an Occupation Regime . 261 Emergency Flood Relief Under the Japanese . 267 Occupation Police . 275 - War Recovery . 280 Japanese Refugees . 283 Postwar Reconstruction - Raising Funds . 285 Conclusion . 29 9 BIBLIOGRAPHY 30 5 x LIST OF TABLES Table 1.1: International Society of Famine Relief, Tianjin. 83 Table 1.2: American F undraising A ctivities . 89 Table 2.1 . 151 Table 3.1 : YMCA 1938 Soldier Relief Fund . 229 Table 3.2 : Fundraising for NCCWRC Tianjin Branch . 232 xi LIST OF FIGURES Figure 1.1 : Image of a Tianjin Beggar . 13 Figure 1.2 : Not Cha rity but a Chance to Earn. 52 Figure 1. 3: Map Showing United War Work Campaign Parade. 7 7 Figure 1.4 : Map Showing Affected Area with Centers of Distribution. 80 Figure 1.5 : Freeman Plan for Preventing Flood and Famine. 86 Figure 1.6 : China Famine Fund Poster . 90 Figure 1.7: Poster Issued by the Shantung Chinese Famine Relief Society . 91 Figure 2.1: Food Distribution a t Tianjin Refugee Shelter. 92 Figure 2.2 : General Yan Xishan ( L eft) and Tianjin Mayor Nan (Right) . 98 Figure 2. 3 : Charity Performance Sponsored by the Dagongbao . 111 Figure 2. 4 : rs. Chang Hsueh - Liang, now the C hairwoman of the West M ukden Floods Relief Association. 11 2 Figure 2. 5 : - Tung appearing in a local theater for the Liaoning Flood Relief . - chang, the first best - dressed lady in the Liaoning Flood Relief Fashion Ball . 11 3 Figure 2. 6 : Mei Lanfang P repare s for a C harity P erformance. 11 5 Figure 2. 7 : . 12 2 Figure 2. 8 : Outside the Tianjin Shourongsuo. 12 5 Figure 2. 9 : e inner city Beiping Yuyingtang. 12 7 Figure 2. 10 : Association; and J . J. Chang (Zhang Renrui), Head of the Institution; taken with two inmates ( R ight). 140 Figure 2. 11 : 142 xii Figure 2. 12 : - Tan, Formerly an actress, gained popularity through a lawsuit, n ow an inmate of the institution. 144 Figure 2. 13 : 15 1 Figure 2. 14 : rls studying in the Institution. 153 Figure 2. 15 : w 158 Figure 2. 16 : Rehearsal of the Chinese Costume Display, Jan. 16 th As shown in the Rotary Charity Night at the Astor House Hotel, Tientsin. 172 Figure 2. 17 : th . 175 Figure 2. 18 : . 180 Figure 2. 19 : . 181 Figure 3.1 : (Left) YMCA Lecture H all prepares for Dr Peter; (Right) Police Chief Yang and Officers E xhibits. 190 Figure 3.2: (Left and Right) Image of Children from the YMCA Model Village. 195 Figure 3.3 : (Left) Dissinfectant Spray Cart (Middl e) Boys Win Awards for Killing Flies (Right) Workers at YMCA Model Village Clean Fetid Water. 195 Figure 3.4 : (Left) Rickshaw Pullers Gather around YMCA Teacher (Right) Neighborhood Children Attend Saturday Classes . 196 Figure 3.5 : Healthy Baby (Middle) Young Man Flexing His Muscles (Right)Leaders of the Health Campaign including M. Thomas Tchou. 198 Figure 3.6 : YMCA Refug ee Camp outside of Tianjin. 199 Figure 3.7 : (Left) Disease Laden Water (Right) Shelters with More Stagnant Water. 221 Figure 3.8 : (Top Left) Temporary Housing used by Workers in Shanghai (Top Right) Housing made from an old Boat (Bottom Left) d e from Mud and Grasses. 223 xiii Figure 3.9 : (Left) YMCA War Relief Classroom Training (Right) YMCA Physical Training. 231 Figure 3.10 : Refu gees Receiving Seed Grain. 23 3 Figure 3.11 : Tianjin YMCA (Left) Refugees making Padded Winter Clothes, (Middle) Children Returning Home after Day School (Right) Refugee Childr en Working Pasting Envelopes. 234 Figure 3.12 : (Left and Middle) YMCA Organized Boys to Shine Shoes ( Right ) Rickshaws Purchased for Healthy Refug ees to make a Living. 234 Figure 4.1 : 242 Figure 4.2 : Postcard of Dojinkai Hospit al. 2 43 Figure 4.3 : 248 Figure 4.4 : Japanese military police reviewing Tianjin residents on the street 252 Figure 4.5: Combating Tientsin Floods (1939) . 2 67 Figure 4.6 : 269 Figure 4.7 : Wa rtime Propaganda Posters. 280 Figure 4.9 : (Left, Middle and R ight) Guomindang ID Program. 297 xiv KEY TO ABBREVIATIONS BSA Bureau of Social Affairs BYHB Beiyang Huabao CCC China Continuation Committee CCP Chinese Communist Party DGB Dagongbao GMD Guomindang GNH Committee for Working through Hardship GRT Tianjin Hall for Spreading Benevolence IJA Imperial Japanese Army JCP Japanese Communist Party MGQK Minguo Qikan ( Republican full text periodical database ) NCC National Christian Council of China NCCWRC National Christian Council War Relief Committee PJRRA Pingjin Relief and Rehabilitation Administration, Tianjin Branch SZGB Tianjin Municipal Gazetteer (Shizheng Gongbao) TCRA Tianjin Christian Relief Association TJCOC Tianjin Chamber of Commerce TMA Tianjin Archives TJRC Tianjin branch of the Red Cross TSMO Tianjin Security Maintenance Organization TXH Native Place Associations (Tongxianghui) UCR The United China Relief, New York xv WMC World Missionary Conference YMCA Christian Association YWCA YSB Yishibao 1 INTRODUCTION In the past two decades, both scholarly and popular attention have draw n to the plight of rural migrants in Ch inese cities as the victims of n eoliberal market reform and a kind of Maoist apartheid that rigidly severed rural migrants from urban public services. 1 Contesting Citizenship in Urban China , she discusses the difficulties arguing that rural hukou holders have become second - class citizens in their own country. 2 While this divide between the city and the countryside in the post reform - era is certainly a unique manifestation of contemporary social policies, the problems of rural refugees in the city and wealth inequality are certainly not new ones. Republican China faced a similar dilemma, but not so much because the st ate exerted its will to enforce clear regional distinctions, but because state power was often diffuse, contradictory, and incapable of meeting the needs of the poor. This narrative of a weak and inept Nationalist government permeates much of the scholars hip on this period; my work seeks to complicate this assessment. I argue that from the chaos of the early twentieth century , emerged incredibly vibrant and diverse responses , among non - state actors, to the problems of social welfare that were both simultaneously divergent and fundamentally linked to Nationalist discourse . The fall of 1 Zheng Tiantian, Red Lights: The Lives of Sex Workers in Post - Socialist China (Minneapolis: University of Minnesota Press, 2009), 48. For examples of this in popular circulation see: Rob Gifford, China Road: A Journey into the Future of a Rising Power (New York: Random House, 2007). Peter Hessler, 2011. Country Driving: A Chinese R oad Trip (New York: Harper Perennial, 2011), and Evan Osnos, Age of Ambition: Chasing Fortune, Truth, and Faith in the New China ( New York: Farrar, Straus and Giroux, 2014). 2 Dorothy J. Solinger, Contesting Citizenship in Urban China: Peasant Migrants, the State, and the Logic of the Market (Berkeley: University of California Press, 1999). Also see: Huang Xiyi, Power, Entitlement, and Social Practice: Resource Distribution in North China Villages (Hong Kong: Chinese University Press, 2007). 2 the Qing Dynasty in 1912 marked the end to any illusion of imperial Confucian ideological hegemony. Poverty could not be neatly hidden away by state i nstitutions ( n o matter how hard the Nationalist s tried), but it was something that spilled out onto the streets, something that was entirely unavoidable. 3 That the Nationalists could not meet these needs does not mean they were entirely unmet. Instead, w eak government institutions provided the freedom and impetus public sphere and civil society time, Guomindang discourse resonated inescapably with the nation alism felt individually by many Chinese philanthropists, meaning that Chinese civil society remained interconnected with state ideology and priorities . 4 Since the late 1980s, historians of Chinese history have largely adopted a neo - culturalist approach to 5 As Fredric Wakemen has argued, this has led to a much more complex, precise, and nuanced historical n arrative of Chinese cities that incorporates a much wider array of historical 3 Shame and h umiliation are often discussed, within the context of colonialism and memory, as central to contemporary Chinese nationalism. Early twentieth - century Guomindang discourse placed Chinese poverty within a similar international context which shaped how non - s tate actors imagined and carried out charity and poverty relief. See: William A. Alternatives: Global, Local, Political 29, no.2 (2004): 199 218, http://www.jstor.org/stabl e/40645112. Also, see David Scott, China and the International System, 1840 - 1949: Power, Presence, and Perceptions in a Century of Humiliation , (Albany, NY: State University of New York Press, 2008). 4 A good example of how nationalism mitigated the auton omy of non - state associations see: Wang Science Magazine Kexue Zazhi ( ): Wang Zuoyue, Osiris 17, (2002): 291 - 322, http://www.jstor.org/stable/3655275. 5 Frederic E. Wakeman and Richard L. Edmonds, 2000. Reappraising Republican China (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2000), 57 - 58. 3 non - state actors than previous works that centered on economic and political theory. 6 However, the consequence of applying cultural/anthropological methods to Chinese urban hist ory has been to strip away much of the chronological context, in such a way, that at times the reality of lived experience is precariously obscured. In response, my work discusses a broad range of discrete non - state actors, including business groups, volu ntary associations, indigenous and foreign religious groups and other international forces that explicitly diverged from Guomindang interests and practice, while remaining activities that take place completely outside the influence of the state, although that influence does not always manifest in traditionally expected ways. This work als o seeks to expand the definition of public sphere in modern Chinese history by exploring how the spaces of disaster relief management, fundraising, and other demonstrations of social responsibility acted as contexts for political participation and public o pinion formation. I argue that the meetings that brought together diverse state and non - state actors to respond to the urgent needs of flood devastation and massive population displacement articulate the communicative elements associated with a Habermasia n public sphere. Philanthropy drew diverse minority powers together, each with their own motivations for relieving suffering and ideas about how it could be accomplished . In using minority here , I am engaging with the much broader interpretation of the term: 6 Wakeman, Reappraising, 2000, 63. 4 common with other groups while maintaining national, ethnic, racial, linguistic, religious, 7 From this crucible of uncertainty emerged opportunities for individual participation in civilian government and the networking of diverse interests that may not have come together in any other context. This dissertation represents my attempt to write a history of Chinese philan thropy by draw ing attention to where state power can be engaged and influenced . Yet, while the Nationalists may have been unable to achieve much of their plans for social welfare reform themselves, Nationalist ideas often inspired the institutional development and cultural transformation that influenced local community leaders. For e xample, while many legal protections for poor labor remained largely theoretical, Guomindang leadership institutionalized these expectations and created the bureaucratic structure that both the Japanese occupation and Chinese Communists would eventually wo rk within. T his study brings critical attention to examples when these vulnerable p opulations protected themselves, participating in processes of modern and urban identity formations. As Lu Hanchao has demonstrated in his Cultural History of Chinese Beggars , members of the underclass were far from passive recipients of philanthropic aid . 8 My work traces both how the suffering organized, and at times individually appealed to the mercies of state actors and philanthropists by examining the letters they sent to government relief 7 Cheung Siu Keung, Marginalization in China: Recasting Minority Politics ( New York : Palgrave Macmillan, 2009), 3. 8 Lu Hanchao, Street Criers: A Cultural History of Chinese Beggars (Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 2005). 5 institutions , bureaucratic institutions, and civilian led organizations like the Tianjin Chamber of Commerce , foreign missionary organizations, and traditional shelters and charities . The written language used to describe the su displaced diversified exponentially during the early twentieth century. This public discourse, which appeared in print journalism and later radio broadcasts , reveals much about the values defining human di gnity among the urban literati. It gradually became a critical vocabulary in the creation and expansion of Chinese national identity. As Rana Mitter has argued, although China had existed as a country for millennia, it was the particular challenges of the twentieth century tha t galvanized it into becoming a nation - state. 9 Where Mitter places his emphasis on the cataclysm of the Japanese occupation of Manchuria, I suggest that the continual relief of poverty, within the context of a growing public discourse, provides a parallel narrative of national awakening of equal importance. Likewise, John Fitzgerald has argued that the basis of most political conflict emanates from a wounded sense of national pride and that the modern states of the early twentieth century were fundamenta lly driven by notions of status among nations. 10 The self - residents in particular affected its international standing is carefully discussed in Ziwa 9 resistance became the catalyst for creat ing a truly universal public notion of Chinese national identity that could be influenced and contested by the Communist and Nationalist parties, see: Rana Mitter, The Manchurian Myth: Nationalism, Resistance and Collaboration in Modern China (Berkeley: Un iversity of California Press, 2000). 10 John Fitzgerald and Yongxiang Qian, The Dignity of Nations: Equality, Competition, and Honor in East Asian Nationalism (Hong Kong: Hong Kong University Press, 2006). 6 11 I hope to further insi st that this self - awareness, while certainly contributing to the c riminalization of poverty as illustrated with nuance by Janet Chen, also inspired heightened sensitivity to public discussions of equality and an unprecedented awareness of universal human d ignity . 12 While nationalism , inspired by resisting Japanese occupation , led to the growth of much more fertile territory for cultivating civic participation, public discus sion, and heightened awareness of the suffering caused by wealth inequality. 13 Throughout the Nanjing Decade (1927 - 1937) , Tianjin was the focal point of a transnational response to Chinese poverty. Common descriptions of suffering for both poor residents of Tianjin and migrant refugees from throughout North China encouraged a myth of national identity that emanated from a collective social responsibility . 14 While Chinese philanthropy must be understood within this international context, its discussion must also consider the traditions of Chinese philosophy as well. As Joanna Smith has effectively demonstrated, the roots of Chinese philanthropy have a long and complex history that did not evaporate under the pressures of modern international 11 ry different reactions to Chinese poverty, see: Zwia Lipkin, Useless to the State (Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Asia Center: Distributed by Harvard University Press, 2006). 12 Janet Y. Chen, Guilty of Indigence: The Urban Poor in China, 1900 - 1953 (Princeton: Princeton University Press, 2012). 13 work: Maria Hsia Chang, The Chinese Blue Shirt Society: Fascism and Developmental Nationalism (Berkel ey, CA: Institute of East Asian Studies, University of California - Berkeley, Center for Chinese Studies, 1985), and William C. Kirby, "Images and Realities of Chinese Fascism," ed. Ugelvik Larsen Stein in Fascism Outside Europe: The European Impulse Against Domestic Conditions in the Diffusion of Global Fascism (New York: Columbia University Press, 2001), 233 268. 14 Narratives of poverty without a parallel narrative of social responsibility could be used to stimulate militant forms of nationalism as seen in 7 moralities. 15 Yu - (Chinese) ethico - political thinkers have always thought of ethics and politics as closely allied. The state is regarded as exist ing for the promotion of human happiness; the best government is one which is truly benevolent in its solicitude for the welfare of the people . 16 another fundamental point I wish to bring to bear throughout this discussio n; that the act of philanthropic giving is intimately associated with negotiating social legitimacy. The urban setting provided the space where diverse agents of philanthropy concentrated, networked, and strategized. The city was also the primary destinat ion for refugees seeking aid, and it is where so much of Nationalist welfare policy focused. 17 Tianjin, while smaller than Shanghai, was the largest city and economic heart of North China. As an international treaty port, Tianjin was host to retired warlo rds, maiban traders, foreign missionaries, and hunhunr ruffians. Tianjin was and remains an immigrant city. Established as a walled garrison in 1404, it gradually grew from a military trading post to the central grain and salt trade center for North Chin a. The placing of this study in a single city also supports establishing a clear context where the 15 Joanna Handlin Smith, The Art of Doing Good: Charity in Late Ming China (Berkeley: University of California Press, 2009). 16 Tsu Yu Yue, The Spirit of Chinese Philanthropy: A Study in Mutual Aid (New York: Columbia University, 19 12), 19. 17 There is a small but important scholarship on Nanjing Decade nationalist rural welfare programs which were part of the Nationalist Reconstruction Movement. For example, see: Yip Ka - che, Health and National Reconstruction in Nationalist China: The Development of Modern Health Services, 1928 - 1937 (Ann Arbor, MI: Association for Asian Studies, 1995). Also see: Stig Thøgersen, A County of Culture: Twentieth - Century China Seen from the Village Schools of Zouping, Shandong (Ann Arbor: University of M ichigan Press, 2002). 8 ting for studying how Chinese policing intersected with new expectations for state benevolence. Decline and fragmentation of state authority provide the fertile context for a study s traditional i mperial 1949. Rather than consider the ill effects of weak government, this chapter explores how chaos gave birth to rich new interpretations of individu al behavior and collective responsibility for social welfare , and inspired the creation of diverse passionate voluntary associations that worked alongside state authority and shared in its governing responsibilities. State power throughout the early twenti eth century was fragmentary and multiple. Working from the argument that providing for the needs of the poor and displaced conveyed a powerful source of legitimacy to any public institution, I discuss how the Tianjin Chamber of Commerce, municipal and pro vincial governments, and private charities together navigated the many disasters of this period. The interactions of these institutions cultivated the expansion of public sphere by drawing public scrutiny over the actions of each, in a way that the back drop, the institutionalization of modern values like nationalism, bureaucratization, and journalistic expression provided both the die which cast these actors , and the source materials on which this chapte r is based. 18 Drawing from the vast 18 of increasing concer ns for efficiency, predictability, and dehumanization. For a careful exploration and Weber's Rationalism and Modern Society: New Translations on Politics, B ureaucracy, and Social Stratification The American Journal of Sociology 85, no. 5 (M arch 1980): 1145 - 1179. 9 Tianjin archival collection and key published documents , the chapter concludes with an analysis of philanthropy as a transnational enterprise which further diffused authority and broadened state accountability. In 1928, at the completion of the Northern Expedition, Tianjin was officially reestablished as a municipality under Guomindang leadership. In reality, the Nationalists were not the exclusive contenders for state authority. In the second chapter , I will argue that occupation of a Northern city by a Southern state was itself a kind of colonial endeavor where the reach of the Nanjing Government almost always far exceeded its grasp. Despite the relative weakness of this fledgling bureaucracy , its rei nterpretation of the place floating populations of wandering refugees, prostitutes, and poor made a significant impact on the opinions of wider Chinese society in ways that continued to reverberate into the communist era . Administrators dreamed of a settle d society; one that was achievable through greater levels of bureaucratic control and efficient use of scarce resources. This chapter delves into archival documents and the internally published Tianjin Municipal Gazetteer to examine the promises of gover nment and how Tianjin society responded. One of the most practical areas where this manifest ed was in the form of new labor regulations. While never effectively enforced, Nanjing perceptions of fair practices influenced the running of several municipal cha rities designed to harness th e labor power of the homeless. Even when unkept, the promises of labor regulation and access to basic employment, quickly became demands among the disaffected unemployed poor. Here I move my discussion of philanthropy as a sou rce of legitimacy from state power to ideological conveyance. Examining more individualized examples of giving will shed 10 light on what types of social capital philanthropy helped create. Municipal charities were the laboratories where the state could recr progressive policies. I will explore specifically how this worked to redefine the place of women in Republican Tianjin . The chapter concludes with a discussion of how foreign charities functioned in the context of g reater state authority and the fetishization of The third chapter takes a step back from Tianjin to discuss in greater depth the role of faith - based charity in creating a modern Chinese ethic of philanthropic giving. While humanism was emerging in the West as a competing basis for ethical living, the emanated from the Christian missionary movement. Utilizing the extensive archival holdings of the international YMCA held at the University of Minnesota and two unpublished collections of newspaper articles related to the s work in Tianjin, this chapter seeks to understand how foreign charity shaped Nanjing D ecade social welfare, i ndustrial fairness, and public health. On the other hand, the endeavor to cultivate a unified Christi helped to dull denominational differences, creating an imagined Christian social order that was uniquely Chinese. Also, as conflict with Japan spread , I compare the role YMCA members played in encouraging militant nationalism civilian led disaster relief in the occupied North . The chapter concludes with a discussion of the interfaith alliance which emerged and grew quickly in the 1920s and utilized ideas from Buddhism, Christianity, Islam, and Daoism to develop a nationwide network of emergency relief, the World Red Swastika Society. 11 The fourth and final chapter ad dresses the twin themes of collaboration and futility as they relate to philanthropy. When the city fell to the Japanese, philanthropy became increasingly complicated as the legitimacy and social stab ility that charity work enabled helped to further estab lish the occupation regime. Both Chinese nationals and foreign aid workers struggled with this reality. While journalism was severely compromised by Japanese censorship , participation in social welfare did not entirely evaporate. Not only did newspapers continue to raise financial support for refugees, they even occasionally pointed out the appalling conditions of shelters to the collaboration regime. The chapter concludes by examining the gradual collapse of Guomindang control t o the Communists. As central policy and municipal reality increasingly diverged , desperation gave way to unique government responses which are analyzed in th e final section. This study of the place of philanthropy in a modernizing society broadens the scholarly discussion on early twentieth century Chinese social policy and draws new light towards the expa nsion of civil governance in Tianjin. Ultimately, t his work seeks to enc ourage scholars to rethink the ways that nationalist governance in Republican China interacted with emerging forms of post - dynastic moral autonomy that reveal the multiple subjectivi ti es at work in alleviating urban poverty , and more broadly, in defining b enevolence . 19 One of the marks of Republican China was the growing diversity of interest groups and associations. These associations, from Marxists to anarchists, each worked to represent various new claims on individual moral autonomy, the fundamental 19 John Christman, "Autonomy in Moral and Political Philosophy," in The Stanford Encyclopedia of Philosophy , ed. Edward N. Zalta (Spring 2015) http://plato.stanford.edu/archives/spr2015/entries/ autonomy - moral/>. 12 org anizing principles of moral law in modernizing Chinese society . While these organizations invented their own new types of subjectivity , each simultaneously developed within a context of powerful state narratives which brought their own claims on individual identity even in the absence of strong state institutions. 20 20 He Yan describes th is interaction between the state and non - state associations as relational. See: He Yan Connections, 1906 - State, Society and Governance in Republican China ( Berlin: Lit, 2014), 54. 13 CHAPTER 1: FAMINE AND FLOOD TWIN CRUCIBLES FOR CHANGE IN THE PUBLIC SPHERE, LATE QING THROUGH THE BEIYANG GOVERNMENT ERA 1895 - 1927. Figure 1.1: Image of a Tianjin Beggar. 1 1 Image of Tianjin Beggar YMCA Image file, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, F lat Files Collection, Collection Number: Y.USA.51 . 14 The decline of empire in China and the ensuing chaos of early Beiyang government rule created vast opportunities for Tianjin village gentry and other local elite to claim a stake in the politics o f charity and disaster relief. Republican China was a period when famin e could affect multiple provinces and threaten the very existence of entire towns and villages and famine relief could represent substantial sums of both foreign and domestic capital. While the disintegration of Qing rule marked the ultimate dissolution o f what Pierre - negotiation with government authority. 2 While recent scholars have drawn attention to the role of the state in policing and criminalizing poverty in China, the motivations for attending to social welfare by civil society deserve a greater hearing, as does the vigorous discussion regarding the relationship between state and society that has marked re cent Chinese scholarship. 3 This chapter examines the history of charity in Tianjin from the late Qing through the end of the Beiyang g overnment period from the perspective of institutional transformations and public discussions of suffering and relief. U sing these perspectives, I attempt to offset the emphasis on state dominated correctional institutions by addressing 2 Pierre - a comprehensive famine relief system during the mid - 1700s and helps to lay out the growing expectations for state provisioned relief during this perio d, see: Pierre - Etienne Will, Bureaucracy and Famine in Eighteenth - Century China (Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 1990). On the changing relationship between the state and civil society during the Qing, see: Kathryn Bernhardt, Philip C. Huang and Mark A. Allee, Civil Law in Qing and Republican China (Stanford, CA: Stanford Un iversity Press, 1994). Also see: Linda Grove and Christian Daniels, State and Society in China: Japanese Perspectives on Ming - Qing Social and Economic History (Tokyo: University of Tokyo Press, 1984). 3 For a recent discussion of fighting poverty in the first half of the twentieth century China, see: Janet Chen, Guilty of Indigence , 2012. For recent work detailing the relationship between state and society in Tianjin, see: Ren Yunlan, Jindai Tianjin de Cishan yu Shehui Jiuji [Charity and Soc ial Relief in Modern Tianjin] (Tianjin Renmin Chubanshe, 2007). 15 public displays of individual social responsibility and the predominance of non - government managed charity relief. 4 The first perspective endeavors to pursue a systematic study of the institutions active in poverty and disaster relief, and address how some of these organizations, which were holdovers from the Qing Period, began to change to address contemporary concerns. These organizatio ns had to contend with many new competing groups that emphasized modern values like national salvation and the entrenchment of foreign charities since the opening of Tianjin as a treaty port in 1860. Taking center stage in this discussion will be the Tianjin Chamber of Commerce, an hinterland and surrounding provinces. 5 Another institu tion that played a leading role in disaster relief and supporting charity work was the modernized Tianjin police force. 6 In order to compensate for the restrictions placed on the buildup of Chinese troops within the city limits of Tianjin after the Boxer Protocol was signed in 1901, Yuan Shikai began training a squad of approximately 2500 court bannermen in the Zhili capital of Baodi as police officers to send to the city. This well - trained police force would play an important role in Tianjin 4 For an excellent article which demonstrates this emphasis on the importance of modern government institutions dominating social welfare policies specifically within the context of regulatin g prostitution, see: - Modern China 33, no. 4 (2007): 423 - 461. 5 For an introduction to the history of the Tianjin Chamber of Commerce, see: Song Meiyun, Jindai Tianjin Shanghui [Mode rn Tianjin Chamber of Commerce], (Tianjin Shehui Kexueyuan Chubanshe, 2002). 6 Kexueyuan Lishi Yanjiusuo, 2013). 16 poverty reli ef, refugee protection, and perform many other functions not usually associated with law enforcement. 7 While the instability of the Warlord Period may have led to much corruption and graft, it also marked the rapid development of public debate and expandi ng limits of individual expression through print media. In particular, I will examine how the 1917 North China flood and the 1920 - 1921 famine were described in news reports. While these ory, they were unprecedented in the amount of global attention they drew. 8 Starting in the late Qing, journalism underwent a radical transformation from the single state organ, The Imperial Gazette , to numerous popularized newspapers. Many of these pap ers were started by foreign missionaries, and the most widely printed in Tianjin were no exception. 9 Tianjin newspapers carried detailed accounts of natural disasters and their effects both within the city and in many of the surrounding villages and towns , connecting urban residents to the plight of refugees and encouraging a broader sense of civic identity and regional community. Moreover, Tianjin newspapers printed criticisms of local government policies, published charity donations to hold officials ac countable, 7 For a comparison between public perceptions of the modernized police force of Chengdu verses the yamen staff that hallmarked Qin The Key to Civilizing Chengdu: Chinese Urban Reform, 1895 - 1937 (Cambridge, MA: Published by the Harvard University Asia Center, 2000), 79 - 110. 8 For a compreh ensive examination of Tianjin newspapers between 1880 - 1949, see: Ma Yi, Tianjin Xinwen Chuanboshi Gangyao (Yi Beijing: Xinhua Chubanshe, 2005). 9 A newspaper that I will primarily rely on, t he Yishibao ( ) was started by a Catholic missionary. For an analysis of the connection between foreign missionaries and the history of print journalism, see: Zhang Xiantao, The Origins of the Modern Chinese Press: The Influence of the Protestant Mission ary Press in Late Qing China (London: Routledge, 2007). 17 and drew attention to charity events cultivating a new and modern sense of social responsibility among a rapidly growing urban middle class. 10 . Located at the muddy intersection of several rivers and prone to flooding, Tianjin nevertheless became a major economic center in Northern China by the Ming Dynasty as a transportation hub for salt and grain distribution as well as a coastal defense area protecting the capital city of Beijing . 11 In 1860, the city became a treaty port which economic capacity relied largely on small cottage industries, with some foreign investment, the city quickly developed i nto the largest center for commerce in North China. After its designation as a treaty port, the ruling structure of the city became increasingly fragmented. Each of the nine countries claiming concession territory operated their own public works, maintain ed separate police jurisdictions, and collected separate taxes. 10 An interesting example of this was the Save the Nation Fund jiuguo chujin ( ) active in the 1920s which both raised money to purchase weapons to fight the Japanese and support Chinese workers str iking at Japanese factories. Although the donations to the Tianjin chapter of this national organization primarily came from the compradors maiban ( ), who became wealthy working as intermediaries for foreign business in Tianjin, it also received offerin gs from local beggars and prostitutes. One wonders how reporting of these donations may have reflected public consciousness towards these members of the social underclass. I argue that this kind of public participation represents a positive way that incre asingly marginalized groups could exert some influence in negotiating their continued importance to the modern national community. 11 Gail Hershatter, The Workers of Tianjin, 1900 - 1949 (Stanford University Press, 1986). Also, Kwan Man Bun argues the sign ificance of salt merchants to stabilizing the urban and economic development of Tianjin discussion here, is his assertion that responsibilities taken on by these salt merchants resemble the emergence of a public sphere where these elites took on civic responsibilities like opening charities and organizing disaster relief, see: Kwan Man Bun, The Salt Merchants of Tianjin: State - Making and Civil Society in Late Imperial China . (University of Hawaii Press, 2001). 18 How did the Chinese native authorities , including city civil administrators, military elites like Yuan Shikai and later competing warlords from the Beiyang Army, local merchants, maiban ( com pradors) , and factory owners , operation of charity measures and transform expectations regarding urban welfare? 12 When state power was weak or non - existent, in what ways did poor Tianjin residents or refugees from the surrounding countryside protect themselves or claim entitlement? What were the informal or non - government al networks that supported philanthropy during times of natural and war related disaster? Investigation of these questions, in terms of urban history and migrati on of refugees from the countryside to the city, will broaden understanding of the development of early modern Chinese civil society as it relates to formation of community identity . 13 Profit and Misfortune: The Tianjin Chamber of Commerce . After the defea t by the Eight Nation Alliance and the signing of the Boxer Protocol on September 7 th nullified. The Tianjin Arsenal was not allowed to manufacture arms for two years, the Dagu Forts were rais ed to the ground, and Beiyang forces were kicked out of the city. secured its position as development was the founding in 19 03 of the Tianjin Chamber of Commerce. 14 The 12 Maiban are Chinese who became rich working for foreign trade companies. 13 Mary R. Anderson, Community Identity and Political Behavior (New York: Palgrave Macmillan, 2010), Political Behavior 31 no. 4 (2009): 603 627. http://www.jstor.org/stable/40587301. 14 Although the Shanghai Chamber of Commerce i other chambers that were set up during the late Qing, the Tianjin Chamber was nearly as influential and set up the same year, five years before the Beijing Chamber was established. David Strand de tails the role of 19 Tianjin Chamber was established primarily to protect the interests of Chinese business leaders in the city and to develop the Zhili regional economic network , by local members of local merchant associations, or huiguan , which had been organizing in the city since the 1690s and distinguished most commonly by native place . 15 At the same time, many of its members were not business leaders but other social elite that embodied emergent power brokers in early Republican Tianjin. 16 As the city was home to many of the richest capitalists and merchants in Northern China, this chamb er quickly became a leading force within the local and provincial economies. Chamber members often sat on city governing councils. 17 Despite its economic power, t often hinged on its involvement with charitable causes. 18 As t he Qing government administration crumbled, the Beijing Chamber of Commerce in relation to maintaining public order, welfare policy and city planning in his work: David Strand, Rickshaw Beijing: City, People, and Politics in the 1920s (Berkeley: University of California Press, 1989 ), 98 - 15 dissolved in 1928 after the Guomindang succes sfully concluded their Northern Expedition Campaign. Zhili The area included parts of modern Hebei, Henan, Shandong and administration of Beijing and Tianjin. Zhang Xuejun - 1937) 4ÿ#~ he Tianjin Chamber of Commerce and the Journal of Hubei University of Economics, Humanities and Social Sciences his d - Century China: The Tianjin Chamber of Commerce, 1904 - 16 For example, Zhang Boling was a member of the chamber of commerce, t he founder of Nankai Far East Survey 10, no. 8 (May 5, 1941): 94 - 95. 17 Mary Backus Rankin, Elite Activism and Political Transformation in China: Zhejiang Province, 1865 - 1911 , (Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 1986), 84. 18 Journal of Social Philosophy 30, no. 1 (1999): 147 - 60. Also see: Song Meiyun, Jindai Tianjin Shanghui [The Modern Tianjin Chamber of Commerce], Tianjin Shehui Kexueyuan Chubanshe, (2002). Song Meiyun argues that after the Xinhai revolution, the relationship 20 the chamber would take on many functions of government both within the city and in the surrounding Zhili Province. By examining the charitable functions of the Tianjin Chamber, I will argue that welfare provision was fundamental to effective political authority and that community expectations evolved alongside shifts in individual moral identity . Zhang Xuejun and Sun Bingfang have suggested that the development of the Tianjin and Zhili Chambers of Commerce create d important economic networks through rural associations that proved essential for improving rural welfare. Chambers provided direct relief during natural disasters, assisted the government to ban the sale of illegal drugs, improved transportation routes which were particularly important for grain distribution, and helped to improve local security. 19 A passage from the chairman of the Foreign Relief Committee in Tianjin captures em of poor communication and distribution networks that plagued the area before this infrastructure was developed: In November, 1877, the aspect of affairs was simply terrible. The autumn crops over the whole of Shansi and the greater part of Chihli, Ho nan, and available port. The Bund was piled mountain high with grain, the Government storehouses were full, all the boats were impressed for the conveyance of supplies towards Shansi and th e Hochien districts of Chihli. Carts and wagons were all taken up and the cumbersome machinery of the Chinese Government was strained to the utmost to meet the enormous peril which stared it in the face. During the winter and spring of 1877 - 78, the most frightful disorder reigned supreme along the route to Shansi. Hwailu - hsien, the starting point was filled with officials and traders all intent on getting their convoys over the pass. Fugitives, beggars, and between the Tianjin Chamber of Commerce and the government epitomized civil society as a negotiation process. 19 Zhang Xuejun and Sun Bingfang, Zhili shanghui yu xiangcun shehui jingji /n [The Zhili Chamber of Commerce and Rural Society and Economy 1903 - 1937], (Beijing: Renmin Chubanshe, 2010). Especially see Chapter 6. 21 thieves absolutely swarmed. The officials wer e powerless to create any sort of order among the mountains. The track was completely worn out, and until a new one was made, a dead block ensued. Camels, oxen, mules, and donkeys were hurried along in the wildest confusion, and so many perished or were killed by the desperate people in the hills, for the sake of their flesh, that the transit could continue on only by the banded vigilance of the interested owners of grain assisted by the train bands or militia, which had been hastily got together, some of whom were armed with breech - loaders. Night traveling was out of the question. The way was marked by the carcasses or skeletons of men and beasts and the wolves, dogs, and foxes soon put an end to the sufferings of any wretch who lay down to recover fro scattered grain bags, dying men and animals so frequently stopped the way that it was often necessary to prevent for days together the entry of convoys on the one side in order to let the tra ins from the other come over. No idea of employing the starving people in making a new, or improving the old road ever presented itself to the authorities; and passengers, thankful for their escape from the dangers of the journey, were lost in wonder that the enormous traffic was possible. 20 In each of the major disasters that afflicted the Zhili area, from its creation until its dissolution, village leaders and Beiyang government officials called on or commanded the chamber to lend its financial support a nd administrative lea dership. From 1903 to 1927, n orthern China experienced four periods of natural disaster in which Tianjin was affected: flood and drought from 1907 - 1908, a flood from 1911 - 1912, a flood and drought in 1917, and drought that affected fi ve provinces from 1920 to 1924. 21 At the same time, North China experienced a series of major clashes between warlord armies starting with the Zhili - Anhui War in 1920, the First Zhili - Fengtian War in 1922, and the 20 Quoted from Walter H. Mallory, C hina: Land of Famine ( New York, NY: American Geographical Society, 1926), 29 - 30. 21 North China (1903 - 1936): The Relation between State and Society in Modern Char Lishi Yuekan [Tianjin: Tianjin Shehui Kexueyuan Lishisuo 4] (2006). 22 Second Zhili - Fengtian War in 1924, as well as countless minor skirmishes. 22 After each of these disasters, the Tianjin Chamber called on its members to give donations and lead or supervise government and non - government charity groups. 23 A significant problem that faced any kind of relief work was ensuring that the distribution of relief materials concentrated on areas that were the most severely affected by disaster and taking care that the same areas were not relieved multiple times by charities working independently from one another. This repres ents a departure from the way that charity work was conducted during the Qing Dynasty. Rather than organize disaster relief that would save the most lives, the Qing emphasized rescuing those who could most quickly begin stimulating agricultural production and stabilize the economy. 24 By the late Qing and early Republican Period, the value of individual human life for its own sake began to have a greater influence on what defined effective governance. To encourage relief work that met these expectations, th e Zhili P rovincial G overnment and Tianjin county government often delegated the Tianjin Chamber to send its members to conduct careful surveys of disaster areas, keep records of all families helped and act as an umbrella organization directing different pr ivate charities, the city police, and Beiyang 22 James E. Sheridan, China in Disintegration: The Republican Era in Chinese History, 1912 - 1949, ( New York: Free Press; London: Collier Macmillan, 1975), 88. 23 This trend appears both within the internal documents of the chamber of commerce including meeting minutes and in communications with various municipal government departments. These donations were also publicized in local newspaper accounts in a way that held individual donations to public scrutiny. Tianjinshi Danganguan, Tianjin Shehui Kexueyuan, and Tianjinshi Gongshangye Lianhehui, Tianjin shanghui dangan huibian, 1912 - 1928 [The Archival Records of the Tianjin Chamber of Commerce] , (Tianjinshi: Tianjin - 3456. 24 For a description of charity in the late Qing see: Lillian M. Li, Fighting Famine in North China: State, Market, and Environmental Decline, 1690s 1990s (Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 2007), 221 - 23 military personnel to work within specific areas. 25 The Tianjin Chamber also required charities to report their monthly donations and expenses to ensure financial accountability. 26 The financial success of cha mber members and their close interaction with the local and provincial governments made members valuable leaders in many of the charity organizations which provided emergency relief and long - homeless. For instance, Li Xingbei, a founding member of the Tianjin Chamber, was active in the Shantang L ianhehui ( ), a united charity organization, and at the same time worked as head of the Tianjin Jiujiyuan ( ˙†#~L™ ), the government operated multipurpose homeless shelter. 27 The management of charity organizations and disaster relief both locally in Tianjin and throughout North China demonstrates the growing political legitimacy of the chamber of commerce as a governing body. 28 However, much Chinese scholarship, even from the last ten years, attributes this success and influence to large investments of foreign capital which supposedly prevented members from participating in nationalistic 25 For archival documents from the Tianjin Chamber of Commerce during the late Qing see: Tianjinshi Danganguan, Tianjin Shehui Kexueyuan, and Tianjinshi Gongshangye Lianhehui, Tianjin Shanghui Dangan Huibian, 1903 - 1911 "w5F [The Archival Records of the Tianjin Chamber of Commerce] , Vol. 1 (Tianjinshi: Tianjin Renmin Chubanshe, 1989). 26 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 002594, 1912, provides a series of lette rs between the Tianjin police chief, provincial police and finance bureau, Beiyang military governor and the TJCOC regarding how to use money stored at the Baoshang bank in an account set up for refugee relief in May 1912. 27 Throughout the dissertation I provide the Chinese names for various charity organizations because the maimai zazi Zhuan niankao , 1926. Similar examples can be found in chambers throughout China. For example, the first chamber of commerce chairman in Hangzhou, Fan Rankin, Elite Activism , 228. 28 Josephine History Workshop Journal 50 (Autumn 2000): 22 - 44. 24 movements. 29 While this may be true to a degree, the record of aggressive proactive involvement of many members suggests that charity was an important way that the Tianjin elite conceived of potentially offsetting some of the negative consequences of collaborating with foreign capital. 30 The importance of the Tianjin Chamber to the Zhili regional soc ial welfare environment was clearly demonstrated by the bewildering variety of groups and individuals that drifted into the city requesting aid. Even when disaster struck areas of Baodi, the provincial capital, refugees went to Tianjin to seek relief rath er than appeal to their own chamber of commerce directly. 31 The Tianjin Chamber was involved in all stages of disaster and poverty relief. For example, during the 1917 flood, members conducted surveys of affected areas and hired boats to rescue stranded v illagers as part of their immediate relief efforts. As winter approached, the chamber organized soup kitchens, used refugee and poor laborers (like residents from the city's Jiaoyangyuan ) to construct temporary housing, and purchased and distributed heavy sets of clothes for the 29 A particularly important group of Chinese elite who would fit this category were compradors w ho made their living primarily working for foreigners. For a perspective on the role of Chinese compradors see: Journal of the Royal Society of Arts 71, no 3690 (August 10, 1923): 670 - 671. Tsai Jungfang has argued that the Chinese word for comprador, maiban, was used in Chinese Marxist scholarship as a term for historical analysis beginning with the writings of Mao in 1935. Terms like to Comprador Ideologists: He Qi (Ho Kai, 1859 - 1914) and Hu Liyuan (1847 - Modern China 7, no. 2 (April 1981): 191 - 225. 30 For a discussion of how th ese Chinese compradors influenced Guomindang politics see: Parks M. Coble, The Shanghai Capitalists and the Nationalist Government, 1927 - 1937 (Cambridge, MA: Council on East Asian Studies, Harvard University, 1980). 31 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 0086991, September 1914. After a major fire in the provincial capital of Baodi, hundreds of refugees fled to Tianjin. For the most part, while the municipal government encouraged the police and social bureau to send these refugees back home, they were not systematically barred from the city as they were during the Chinese civil war in the 1940s. 25 homeless. 32 By the spring of 1918, the chamber oversaw reconstruction efforts, both helping small business owners reopen their shops and family - owned cottage industries purchase materials to restart production. 33 The Tianjin Chamber raised funds for and 34 As the civil war between warlords began to terrorize large areas of northern China, tens of thousands of refugees began to make their way to Tianjin. In response, the chamber organized building teams to construct temporary housing in areas outside of the city and worked on reclaiming land projects to allow refugees to settle down, or provided for transportation costs so that refugees could return home after the fighting had died down. 35 As an association of business leaders, the Tianjin Chamber could quickly organize specific manufactured goods that were lifesaving during times of trouble. With the onset of winter after the 1917 flood, producers of si lk, foreign cloth, and cotton cloth were organized and sometimes coerced by chamber leaders to provide winter clothes to relieve refugees. 36 By donating clothes for winter relief, these businesses also received benefits 32 William Rowe suggested that as Chinese chambers of commerce began collaborating with charity halls, one of the negative consequences was the deterioration of class relations. However , for most of the archival immediately apparent and the record instead shows a continuity in both the language used to address the suffering of the poo comment see: William T. Rowe, Hankow: Conflict and Community in a Chinese City, 1796 - 1895 (Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 1989), 133. 33 TMA, J0128 - 2 - 002939, Janua ry 1918. Reports to Tianjin Chamber of Commerce regarding preparations for winter relief and a summary of river reconstruction work underway near Beijing after flood water began to recede. 34 see: William T. Rowe, Hankow: Commerce and Society in a Chinese City, 1796 - 1889 (Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 1984), 157. 35 TMA, J0128 - 2 - 002161 , December 1925. A letter from one of the board members of the Tianjin Chamber of Commerce to military governor Lin of the Beiyang army. 36 TMA, J0128 - 2 - 002939 - 003, August 10, 1917, Producers sometimes did everything they could to reduce the amount they 26 like tax waivers, public recognition, or other incentives. 37 Relief from the chamber often targeted specific industries that would both benefit the general welfare of the city while rebuilding infrastructure critical for businesses to reopen . For example, in April of 1919, the chamber began distributing food, clothing, and monetary aid to ferry boatmen who had their livelihoods destroyed by the recent floods. 38 This kind of focused relief to reestablish vital industries reflects the emphasis on reinstating agricultural production that was the hallmark of Late Qing disaster relief models. The members of the chamber often financially supported, supervised, or coordinated the work of religious organizations during this period as well. I n the summer begin constructing shelters for homeless war refugees and re settling them. 39 This sort of collaboration was mutually beneficial for the chamber and the religi ous groups with which it worked. Other groups like the Tianjin Christian Federation ( ), which itself was an umbrella organization for Christian philanthropy and evangelism established their reputation by operating their own schools and other acts of philanthropy. 40 shop owners to hand over their donations. However, the chamber had many other ways to encourage participation like denying merchants the right to sell goods or publica lly shaming those who refused to participate. 37 TMA, J0128 - 2 - 002939 - 072, 1918. Letter to Tianjin Chamber of Commerce from Wei Xilin. 38 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 004826 - 003, April 18, 1919. 39 TMA, J0128 - 2 - 000528, May 1926. The Red Swastika Society was the charity arm of the redemptive religious society, the Guiyi Daoyuan. In many ways it was modeled after the international red cross, but distinctly derived from Chinese traditions and values. Although the Red Swastika Society was the most prominent, numerous other swastika societies, represented by other colors, were also active in providing charitable relief. 27 their connections with volunteers experienced in managing emergency and poverty relief made them essential to successful operations. 41 By supporting t hese well - respected and popular organizations in the community, the Tianjin Chamber also gained a positive reputation. In Chapter 3, I will look more into how their participation in chamber relief work also helped to legitimate their significance in a mod ernizing China that increasingly dismissed religious belief as superstition. 42 Although writing regarding current state - faith interactions, Susan McCarthy makes a compelling case that religious social service activities enable adherents to resist and repur pose state activities associated with charitable relief. 43 Just as the Tianjin collaboration between faith - based organizations and the Tianjin Chamber fostered the broa dening of public participation in governance which in turn shape d Nationalist welfare and labor policies, especially how those policies were interpreted on a local level . This provides an excellent example of how the protection and promotion of active rel igious participation in civil governing can work to expand and diversify the public sphere . McCarthy argues this positive participation is only possible when the state remains a strong regulating entity and secular, not supporting any one particular relig ious 40 For an article on the development of the Tianjin indigenous church, see: Pu We nqi &˚˙·C§ and Mo Zhenliang [The History and Tianjin Shehui Kexueyuan Zhexue Yanjiusu, (2001). 41 Collaborating with foreign religious charities also was an important way to raise financial support. 42 This represents an important departure from imperial governance that while, not necessarily claiming the same degree of divine appointment seen in me dieval Europe, was certainly bolstered by an enduring tradition of Confucian hierarchy and heavenly mandate. For a discussion of how the Chinese Republican Fest Modern China 30, no. 2 (April 2004): 199 - 227. 43 The China Journal , no. 70 (July 2013): 48 - 72. 28 identity. However, we see neither case in Tianjin. Instead, the sheer demand for relief work meant that there was plenty opportunity for any charity to find work. 44 Even in the presence of a weak secular state, religious participation in the public s phere helped to increase civil participation in Tianjin and was mutually beneficial . 45 For example, the Tianjin Christian Federation set up an association for relieving women and children to protect them from trafficking during famine periods. T he Tianjin county government dictated the skills taught in these shelters , extending state influence beyond the reach of its purse strings. While at the same time , allowing private organizations to help carry the burden of housing and protecting these women , created a venue for spreading religio us ideas that might otherwise have been unavailable. 46 While some business leaders in Tianjin made charitable donations during times of crisis from a desire to participate in local governance, the financial incentives offered b y the Tianjin Chamber as it gained greater control and autonomy to relieve natural disasters became increasingly attractive to potential donors. The business of refugee relief could be quite lucrative. By the late 19 th century, Tianjin was already a majo r hub for distributing grain throughout the Northern provinces. Modernizations in transportation 44 Jürgen Habermas discu sses the potential benefits of religious participation in the public sphere in his European Journal of Philosophy 14, no. 1 (April 2006): 1 - - W Reset DOC: June 2008, part 5, http://www.resetdoc.org/story/00000000926. 45 Habermas argues that religious participation in the public sphere is primarily beneficial within the presence of a strong liberal state. However, the context of Republican China offers an interesting alternative: numerous competing secular states emerging but not in a position of complete dominance, declining influence of the majority religions of Buddhism and Daoism in public affairs, the emergence of transnat ional ecumenical movements and the specially protected position of minority foreign religions. For 46 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 005429, mostly from April 1922, contains a series of letters to the Tianjin Chamber regarding the protection of women and children. 29 infrastructure helped to facilitate this further especially through the development of several railways, like the Jin Han in 1905, the Jing Feng in 1907, the Jing Zhang in 1909, and the Jin Pu in 1912. 47 During the drought that afflicted five Northern provinces, Mallory credits the construction of these railways as responsible for the greater success of government and private charity relief. 48 Transformations in grain distribution are not only important for understanding how famine relief was adapting to incorporate modern technologies to increase efficiency, it also represents an important indicator of governance, transitioning from primarily a state enterpris e to economic and social control marginally shared with a burgeoning civil society. 49 late Qing) performed public functions like fire prevention and welfare. The chambers of 50 From this perspective, even apparently mundane responsibilities of the Tianjin Chamber of Commerce acquire greater significance. Although grain storage proliferated during the late Qing, many restrictio ns on grain movement during famine persisted. This meant the passes distributed to merchants to purchase grain represented a monopoly that could be very profitable. After the Xinhai Revolution, which began in earnest after the Wuchang uprising on October 10, 1911 and ended on February 12, 1912 with the abdication of the 47 YSB , January 8, 1928. 48 Mallory, Land of Famine , 30. 49 For a discussion of the creation of Chinese chamber of commerce and the growth of the public sphere Mode rn China 27, no. 2 (April, 2001): 155 - 201. 50 Mary Backus Rankin, Elite Activism and Political Transformation in China: Zhejiang Province, 1865 - 1911 (Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 1986). 30 six - year - old child emperor Puyi, the national government built upon a foundation already well - established by the chambers of com merce that rapidly spread throughout the country since 1903 to ensure the free movement of supplies for disaster relief. 51 As the Beiyang government consolidated control, especially in the Zhili provincial area, members from the finance ministry worked to remove restrictions on the transporting of relief grain throughout the five Northern provinces. 52 Besides removing restrictions, the Beiyang government also prevented multiple fees as grains passed through different provinces and encouraged merchants to m ove grain by minimizing other taxes and transport fees. The finance ministry placed higher taxes on the production of alcohol using grains during famines to help lower grain prices. Nevertheless, while it was the Beiyang government which set many of thes e objectives, it was the Tianjin Chamber which carried them out. 53 This h elps to further illustrate the relationship between the chamber of commerce and the municipal government. City administrators relied on the efficiency of private enterprise to respon d to and resolve welfare crises. On one level, this insulated the government from the repercussions of failed relief programs by placing the onus of charitable giving on urban enterprise. At the 51 The success of national government reforms to stabilize grain prices is one of the reasons Chinese scholars have argued that strong national government control of civil society was necessary in the form of a Y The China Review 12, no. 2 (Autumn 2012): 111 - 140. 52 Chen Ling describes the disaster relief provisions of the Beiyang government, see: Chen Ling , [Comment on the Relief Policy Heze Xueyuan Xuebao 28, no. 1 (February 2006): 86 - 89. 53 For a comparison of some of the methods used to control grain prices during famine used in southern China, see: Cen Dali and and Local Government Countermeasures], Ming Qing Lun Cong [ A Collection of Essays on the Ming and Qing Dynasties ] Zhonggong Zhongyang Dangxiao Wenshibu, Tianjin Jinnanqu Shuangyang Zhen Dangwei Bangongshi. 31 same time, this gave the Tianjin Chamber the power to both alleviate the rising price of grain during disaster and ensure that its members could reap the most benefit from transporting food - stuffs. 54 The relationship between the private sector economy and municipal governance was often most effectively negotiated within the territory of many services considered essential to securing socia l rights, with the devolution of welfare responsibilities to non - state actors as a means to minimizing social 55 By providing tax exemptions for the movement of grain and reducing transportation fees, Tianjin merchants were encouraged to parti cipate in the moving of the massive amounts of grain from surrounding provinces. 56 By the time of the 1920 - 21 famine, all grain transportation between provinces and within Zhili were organized by the Tianjin Chamber. 57 In 1921, the Zhili P rovincial G overnm ent created a pingtiaoju ( ), a bureau for stabilizing the cost of rice and other grains throughout the province, and 54 - [Republican Era Famine in Huabei and the Tianjin Grain Market: 1912 to 1936] Zhongguo Nongshi 2, (2006): 69 - 77. 55 seek to outsource its charitable responsibilities provides useful insight into the relationship between the Tianjin Chamber of Commerce and the municipal go vernment, see: Behrooz Morvaridi, "The Politics of Philanthropy and Welfare Governance: The Case of Turkey," The European Journal of Development Research 25, no. 2 (2013): 305 - Administrati ve Theory & Praxis 28, no. 4 (2006): 586 592. 56 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 004986 - 006, August 18, 1920. During the harsh famine of the early 1920s, the TJCOC ordered stocked grains from cities like Canzhou to be used for saving refugees. 57 Ren - 1936 nian, [ Natural Calamity in North China and Tianjin Grain Market in the Period of Republic], Zhongguo Nongshi (2006), 74. 32 placed the department under the management of the Tianjin Chamber. 58 Even in the 1930s, not just anyone could buy grain and then transpo rt and sell it in the city. The Zhili government issued passes to purchase grain from local vendors; without these passes, vendors were restricted from selling their goods to merchants. The Zhili government delegated the job of distributing these passes to the Tianjin Chamber, which certainly provided preferential treatment to its members. Normally, after the passes were distributed to the merchants , they would use their own money to purchase the grain. However, in times of disaster, the chamber could lend charity relief money to the merchants to purchase grain at low interest rates. In this way, the chamber functioned to relieve famine and also coordinate and stabilize some of the risks for merchants. Along with alleviating famine through encouraging the smooth operation of grains and other foodstuffs. Thus , at the beginning of the Republican Period, Tianjin only imported several thousand dan of grain. But after 1921, the city imported nearly 100,000 dan , by 1922 more than 1 million (although much of this was from global famine donations) and by 1931 to 1932 , this number reached its highest points of 27 million and 30 million dan respectively. 59 With such lucrative prospects, why would some merchants shy away from participating in this moneymaking opportunity? In fact, transporting grain could carry with it some significant risk. I n October 1920, a train transporting grains from Xuzhou to relieve a food shortage in Tianjin was intercepted by bandits and all of 58 Yang Tao describes the relationship bet ween the Zhili provincial relief bureau and the TJCOC in some eau Investigation Center], Lanzhou Xuekan , 2011. 59 Xu Daofu, Zhongguo Jindai Nongye Shengchan ji Maoyi Tongji Ziliao , [Chinese Modern Agricultural Production and Trade Statistics], (Shanghai: Shanghai Renmin Chubanshe, 1983), 138. 33 its cargo was stolen. 60 Even if grains were not stolen outright, shipments could be impeded for long periods of time due to the frequent wars in the area. 61 Another problem was that the fees for chamber members hip meant that many smaller family operations saw membership as more of a burden than opportunity. 62 As a governing body, the chamber possessed the authority to regulate taxation, so it utilized this power to cultivate charity. Besides directly budgeting c ertain taxes for the operations cost of charitable organizations like the Jiaoyangsuo (a method which recalls the incredibly obscure tax collecting methods of late imperial China), the chamber also approved a wide range of special tax incentives and exemptions. For example, the goods not taxed or rec eived a reduced rate. 63 The chamber of commerce also used its authority 64 By providing tax benefits such as these, the chamber encouraged private charities to operate in th 60 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 004986 - 05 3, October 20, 1920. 61 Tianjinshi Danganguan, Tianjin Shehui Kexueyuan, and Tianjinshi Gongshangye Lianhehui Tianjin Shanghui Dangan Huibian, 1912 - 1928 [The Archival Records of the Tianjin Chamber of Commerce] , Vol. 2, Tianjinshi: Tianjin Renmin Chubanshe, (1992): 1698 - 1707. 62 The bitter rivalry between petty merchants and the influence of the small commercial elite that composed Tianjin Association of Merchants (Tianjin Shangmin Xiehui) with the sponsorship of the local Guomindang party office see: Zhang Xiaobo, "Merchant Associational Activism in Early Twentieth - Century China: The Tianjin General Chamber of Commerce, 1904 - 1928" (PhD diss ., Columbia University, 1995), 290 - 291. 63 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 002890, 1912. 64 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 002581 - 047, 1911. 34 The Tianjin Chamber also took part in international relief projects during the that devastated Japan in 1923. In addition to sending cash the Red Cross, the TJCOC arranged famine relief in the aftermath of the earthquake. 65 Tokyo and the surrounding areas were completely devastated by the severity of the earthquake. Although Chinese philanthropists responded to the tragedy in a variety of f orms, much of the relief was specifically targeted at Chinese living in Japan like the Yokohama Chinese Association. 66 was previously appointed as the head of disaster r elief in Tianjin after the 1917 flood, later became the chairman for the Russian Famine Relief Association and worked with the TJCOC to raise donations to help relieve the famine in Russia in 1922 and 1923. 67 Central planning for disaster prevention and po st - disaster relief was not something new to Republican China. Qing famine relief centered on the establishment of local granaries with central government support. However, by the late Imperial Period, this system was woefully inadequate and rife with corru ption. 68 After Yuan Shikai was 65 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 005574 - 002. On September 6, 1923, the Tianjin Red Cross sent a letter to the chamber asking for approval to send donations to Japan. Also see articles from the YSB, New York Times, The Gre at Kanto Earthquake and the Chimera of National Reconstruction in Japan (New York: Columbia University Press, 2013). 66 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 005574 - 009, September 22, 1923. There was also fear that Japanese citizens would attack foreigners, especially Koreans; se veral accounts witnessed Korean laborers being crucified. "Refugees bring Tales of Danger," New York Times The Times The Capricornian (October 20,1923): 9. 67 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 005999 - 033, December 20, 1922. China was an active participant in international famine The Maitland Daily Mercury (October 8, 1921): 5. 68 Carol H. Shiue provides useful analysis of the Qing dynasty granary system and provides several 35 promoted viceroy of Zhili Province in June 1902, he began issuing urgent requests to the Tianjin Chamber demanding their immediate support for specific disasters. However, the chamber was largely left on its own to organize c haritable institutions and come up with a plan of response. After a disaster occurred, the first issue was usually the question of how to settle refugees who would come in great number to the city. The chamber would initiate relief work by holding a meeti ng to begin collecting funds for relief. As a result of one such meeting, Yuan Shikai ordered the chamber to begin urgently relieving the disaster victim s of the Yongding flood in 1907. T he chamber invited board members of each charity to discuss the dis aster relief solutions in detail and create an urgent relief group to borrow and distribute money to meet the immediate needs. This funding was distributed to each family, which could include extended family members. In the winter of 1907, the combined charity groups distributed more than 10,000 yuan and winter clothes in Baodi, Tianjin, Ninghe, and Wuqing. Goods and money were often directly distributed by chamber board members. To solve local relief problems , the chamber sometimes turned to the Tianjin Emergency Societies, jiuji shanhui ( ). During the Yongding river bank flood mentioned above, the TJCOC directed this group to go to Wuqing County to distribute relief goods. 69 A similar institution for emergency relief was the Tianjin Life Saving Society , Jishengshe , which worked with both the chamber and the Zhili Disaster Relief: Moral Hazards and Intergovernment al Finance in Eighteenth and Nineteenth Century The Journal of Economic History 64, no. 1 (March 2004): 100 - 124. 69 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 000757, 1907. 36 government relief agency, the Zhili z henfuju . The TJCOC would dispatch the J ishengshe to meet the individual reque sts of village representatives for relief. 70 Besides working to relieve poverty or disaster stricken areas, the Tianjin Chamber also assisted with individual business losses due to isolated disasters including a fire that destroyed a Zhonghe cigarette fact ory. 71 The T J COC also received requests for help from socially marginalized groups like the disabled. That disabled individuals were organizing at all, although with some precedent, demonstrates an important shift. Traditionally those with physical or ment al deficiencies would be cast away by their families or isolated from public view for fear of embarrassm ent. However, in this request, these blind individuals worked together to obtain relief from the chamber. 72 As wealth and power shifted to the nouvea u riche class of factory owners and foreign trade firms, embodied by the Tianjin Chamber, expectations of common people followed these new lines of power. By c hamber presented a positive impression to urban society , particularly the exponentially growing number of newspaper readers, and brought legitimacy to this shift. With so many disasters plaguing North China during the 1910s and 1920s, donations and funding fo r charity operations were always lacking to the extent that private donations were required to fund government - initiated programs. In response, the Beiyang government developed a program to establish special banks for loaning money 70 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 001469 - 008, 1909. 71 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 000983, 1908. series of letters between the Zhonghe cigarette shop and other shops which were affected by a fire and requested relief. 72 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 002567 - 049, 1911. The names of two of the blind representatives were attached to the let ter, Li Changqing and Xu Shusen. The appeal uses very traditional language of extreme deference and humility, comparing themselves to insects and typical of Chinese Buddhist concern for the value of preserving all forms of life. 37 after a disaster. Much like the granaries of the late Qing, these loans were targeted at helping small farmers and cottage industries back into production. Although this type of relief did not specifically distinguish between the deserving and undeserving poor, it did focus on t hose seen as most capable of rebuilding the local economy and carried with it an expectation that recipients would participate in their own salvation. 73 After the flood in 1917, Bian Yinchang, who held key positions in the Tianjin Chamber from 1912 - 1926 and , ba da jia , approached Xiong Xiling to set up a flood river works department and to build up a yinli bureau to give loans to poor people so that they could restart their small businesses. 74 75 While Xiong Xiling may be best known for his brief service as p rime m inister for Yuan Shikai in 1913 , and as a late imperial Qing reformer, his career after he retired from politics was equally 76 73 For a seminal work that discusses the distinction between the deserving and undeserving poor, see: Michael B. Katz, Undeserving Poor: America's Enduring Confrontation with Poverty: Fully Updated and Revised, (Oxford: Oxford University Press, USA, 2013). For a similar discussion which looks at debates and The Art of Doing Good: Charity in Late Ming China , (Berkeley: University of California Press, 2009): 102 - 122. 74 Fo - Associational Activism in Early Twentieth Century China: The Tianjin General Chamber of Commerce, 1904 - - 321. 75 Xiong Xiling had long been an advocate of creating banks specifically for providing small loans. In his Our farming methods should be improved. Agriculture in the United States is highly developed and her products find a good market in Europe. The people are thereby enriched, and industry and commerce consequently prosper. We propose that as soon as the financial condition of this country become s more stable, we will establish agricultural banks in all the provinces, so that poor farmers may borrow money to The General Policy of the Chinese Government (Peking: Printed by The Peking Daily News, 1913): 18. 76 Zhou Qiugang, Xiong Xiling yu Cishan Jiaoyu Shiye [Xiong Xiling and the Cause of Philanthropic Education], (Changsha: Hunan Jiaoyu Chubanshe, 1991). 38 Th e operational cost of the charity bureaus , yinliju , were either borrowed from the local government or gathered together by the local gentry in each charity group in order to protect the legal rights of each gentry and businessman, and guarantee the yinliju could open successfully. While it was really chamber members who were providing the funds, the Beiyang government fixed interest rates on loans to limit exploitation. 77 Typically these kinds of loans charged an interest rate of only around 3 4%. During the flood of 1917 , there were a total of 309 yinli bureaus established in the Zhili area which provided 316,213 yuan to around 4,400 families. 78 Historically, Zhili Province was a center for producing cotton and fabric in North China. 79 When the flood disas ter struck major weaving areas like Gaoyang, Raoyang, Xianxian and the Suning areas, it directly impacted the market in Tianjin which was a major distribution center for these goods. After the 1917 flood, local weavers in the city proper also struggled to get supplies. To alleviate the difficulties of these small industries, the Tianjin Chamber worked with the Zhili Provincial Chamber to lend money at fixed minimal rates of interest and searched for alternative sources to stabilize the price of yarn and en courage the recovery of these small businesses. The chambers also encouraged businesses to purchase goods produced in disaster areas by providing tax incentives and issuing low interest loans to companies that were willing to purchase from these areas. 77 Tianjinshi Da nganguan, Tianjin Shanghui Dangan Huibian, 1912 - 1928, (1992), 3390. 78 Li Mingzhu , Tianjin yu ta de Fudi [Tianjin and its Mansions], (Tianjin: Shehui Kexueyuan Chubanshe, 2002), 406. 79 Xu Daofu, Zhongguo Jindai Nongye Shenchan ji Maoyi Tongji Ziliao [Chinese Modern Agricultural Production and Trade Statistics], (Shanghai: Renmin Chubanshe, 1983), 203. 39 T he Zhili P rovincial G overnment offered to pay for more than 50% of the interest allowed on loans made to companies buying yarn and fabric produced in these areas. 80 These policies favoring locally sourced goods to jumpstart post - disaster recovery resemble t he traditional pressure the Imperial government could utilize to recover the agrarian economy. While the chamber worked to support the interests of members when disaster struck, the Beiyang government helped to insulate local markets from cheap internatio nal goods which might undermine post - disaster recovery. For example, the Beiyang government set restrictions on purchases made from S anjingyanghang , a Japanese distributor. After purchasing yarn and cloth, Tianjin merchandisers distributed the materials to each household in the disaster area. From this illustration, we not only see how the economic controls implemented by the chamber of commerce, working in conjunction with the Zhili government, could help to heal shattered industries which were at the c ore of providing subsistence for the majority of those living at that level, we also gain a better understanding of the hierarchical relationship between organs of civil society , like the chamber of commerce and provincial military government. While commands regarding relief work were made by the Beiyang leadership in Baodi, the state relied heavily on the Tianjin and Zhili C hambers of C ommerce who in turn directed smaller provincial chambers who finally directed the actual purchasing practices of merchants, vendors, and lenders. 81 The solution 80 Tianjinshi Danganguan, Tianjin Shanghui Dangan Huibian, 1912 - 1928, (1992), 2579. 81 YSB , February 1, 1918. 40 for recovering the weaving industry during the 1917 flood demonstrates continuity with the tradition of restoring agricultural production during the Qing Period. They both supported and stimulated the econ omy in the disaster area and required the disaster refugees to produce and save themselves. The primary difference was that now, in addition to focusing on reestablishing agricultural production, maintaining subsistence became a fundamental responsibility of the governing elite. 82 The traditional value of focusing relief efforts on reconstructing previously productive aspects of the local economy after disaster was also reflected in the training efforts used to educate disaster refugees who were temporarily sheltered in Tianjin. Refugee relief used charity donations to teach skills of self - reliance to the displaced. their capacity. In response, the Tianjin Chamber sent child ren to an orphanage in Shanghai where they lived while working as apprentices at the Housheng Weaving Factory. After two years of training, the children returned to Tianjin where the Tianjin Chamber helped them to find jobs. 83 This type of solution was ver y common during periods of famine. When compared to the millions displaced by these disasters, recruiting several hundred refugee children to work in the factories may seem trifling, but it demonstrates the philosophy of charity that informed chamber memb er decisions and the importance of national networks of charity which allowed for distant support during times of intense disaster. 82 Li Mingzhu, Tianjin yu ta de Fudi, 407. 83 Tianjinshi Danganguan, Tianjin Shanghui Dangan Huibian, 1912 - 1928, (1992), 3417 - 3419. 41 in Baodi. Under the initiative of Yuan S hikai, the provincial government established a z henfuju ( ) or relief bureau. In the late Qing when Yang Shixiang became the governor of Zhili, he worked with elite circles to create a large relief fund dedicated to helping the province. Along with dis tributing funds and rebuilding materials, the Zhili Relief Bureau worked with water conservation, price stabilization, long - term welfare, and organized land reclamation. It was an important relief organization which responded to the early twentieth century. 84 This relief bureau was another way for individual citizens to interact directly with their government. Requests for aid often came from local village gentry in affected areas. 85 Providing disaster relief was an important elem ent of modern governance, a fact that new or minor political parties sometimes utilized to increase their recognition. For example, the Hebei Progressive Party was active in relieving Baodi after a flood in 1914 and trumpeted its efforts to the local popu lace in order to win support. 86 By taking the responsibility to respond to natural disasters and seasonal relief, the philanthropic work of the Tianjin Chamber of Commerce also represents an important connection between the city and its hinterland. Regiona l rural networks, often organized into native place associations in the city, created alliances and informed transactions between merchants in Tianjin and throughout China. 87 In the face of major disaster, 84 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 002567, 1911. Representatives from villages around Tianjin approached the Tianjin Chamber to relay their need to the relief bureau. 85 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 0 01469, 1909, contains a series of requests for aid from villager elected representatives. 86 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 008699, 1914. 87 Modern China 21, no. 4 (1995): 387 419. 42 native place associations connected cities into nat ional networks of charitable giving. 88 Confronted with overwhelming disasters, village leaders appealed directly to the Tianjin C hamber first and foremost on the basis of these ties. Many of these letters followed a standard appeal that represented the bu reaucratic language of requesting aid by describing the helplessness of the villagers and their total dependence on the mercy of the chamber for continued existence. Probably , the language of these letters conformed to similar patterns because they were pr epared by poor unemployed scholars living in Tianjin who would offer their writing skills to petitioners for a small price. However, not all these communications fit this standard appeal and several describe a horrific scene. I n one letter to the Tianjin Chamber, a villager named Chen Ling begged for food, explaining that people in his village had resorted to eating each other. While I did not find many letters that discussed cannibalism, such materials represent an alternative picture of suffering to the published narratives found in newspapers. 89 Native place associations were important sponsors of urban charity. In January of 1926, the Anhui Association based in Tianjin began raising funds and conducting relief activities to assist war refugees in the ci ty. 90 The Yantai ( ) Chamber of Commerce helped raise relief monies by convincing its members to purchase lottery tickets from the Tianjin Poor Factory, pinmin g ongchang ( ). 91 Associations not only worked to 88 Toby Lincoln, "Fleeing from Firestorms: Government, Cities, Native Place Associations and Refugees in the Anti - Japanese War of Resistance," Urban History 38, no.3 (2011): 437 - 456. Karla Simon contextualizes these native W. Simon, Civil Society in China the Legal Framework from Ancient Times to the New Reform Era (Oxford [UK]: Oxford University Press, 2013). 89 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 000306 - 009, 1907. 90 TMA, J0134 - 1 - 00046, January 1926. 43 provide relief in the city, they were also an important advocate when disaster or poverty struck. I n 1912, representatives from Jiangxi Province collected donations from 92 Even gangs o f hunhunr (the iron - willed portions of the city and contributed programs that benefited the social welfare. 93 Besides a growing number of government bureaus for responding to disasters and the vario us chambers of commerce, several charity organizations arose seeking to better regulate and evenly distribute and coordinate charity efforts. Two groups active in Tianjin included the Tianjin Shantang L ianhehui ( ) and the Bashantang ( ). 94 The Tia njin Federation of Benevolent Halls , S hantang L ianhehui helped to the Tianjin Jiaoyangyuan. 95 The Temporary Emergency Battlefield Relief Association , Bashantang , provided both emergency relief and sustained charity. By the mid - 1920s, as 91 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 004898, 1919. Increasingly, displays of wealth were often associated with charity. 92 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 003045, 1912. 93 Journal of Urban History 27 (2000):75. Bun argues that while most Chinese scholarship has overlooked the Ti anjin hunhunr as another example of pre - communist lawlessness indicative of the fragmentation of urban society, preformed community services ranging neighborhoods and fundraised for charity causes. 94 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 004382, 1916. Along with its activities to support relief work in Tianjin and its surrounding villages, the Tianjin Shangtan g also helped to raise donations for disasters throughout the in Jiangsu and Anhui. This kind of cross provincial charity work was very importan t during the early Republican period and national charity networks were often reciprocal. For example, during the floods a year later in 1917 that decimated much of northern China, Shanghai sent millions of yuan and thousands of volunteers to help with re lief efforts. 95 TMA, J0131 - 1 - 000089, 1916. In April 1916, the Shantang Lianhehui provided female winter coats to the Tianjin Jiaoyangyuan. 44 warlord skirmishes intensified in the areas surrounding Tianjin, the B ashantang established a specific branch to help war widows and orphans who had fled to Tianjin to escape the fighting and now lived homeless on the streets in the city. 96 The charity also helped to pay the medical bills of wounded soldiers. 97 In the winter, the association opened soup kitchens and received donations from the Rice Shop Association. 98 After 1928, the Guomindang municipal leaders would press charities towards ever greater levels of consolidation and administration. However, it is important to note here that well coordina ting their relief efforts and voluntarily consolidating their efforts. While the Guomindang laid much of the administrative groundwork and bureaucratic infrastructure that would be expanded under the communists, these institutions must also be considered w ithin the context of a semi - autonomous civic society that was applying the lessons of a growing private sector economy to increasing the effectiveness and efficiency of non - ( ) government philanthropy. Traditional charitable institutions that continued to persist from the Qing Period took on new responsibilities while continuing certain cultural norms. One such institution was the Hall for Nurturing the Multitude, Yulitang ( ). While the institution provided for basic needs like clothing, its focus began to shift towards provisioning medical services and epidemic prevention. 99 Reports from this charity also 96 TMA, J0128 - 2 - 002161, 1925. provides a collection of letters between the Bashantang Temporary Emergency Battlefie ld Relief Association and the Tianjin County Canshihui ( ). 97 TMA, J0128 - 2 - 002161 - 024, February 7, 1926. 98 TMA, J0128 - 2 - 002589 - 063, July 26, 1927. 45 demonstrate the increasing scrutiny placed on charities that received public donations. Each mo nth, the Yulitang sent the Tianjin City Hall a booklet detailing the monies it received, expenses, and an account of the number of poor people residing at the institution. 100 In July 1913, the Yulitang expanded by adding an orphanage school. 101 Under the new R epublican government, specific taxes were levied to support and expand government charity work. For example, the Tianjin Salt Merchants Orphanage, Changlu Yuyingtang ( ) was partially supported by a tax levied by the Tianjin Chamber on public transport ation. 102 All clear examples of state modernization in charity. Changes in the policies of the Tianjin Hall for Spreading Benevolence, Guangrentang (GRT) are emblematic of the influence of modernization on the traditional ethics of social responsibility. T he GRT was one of the largest and longest lasting late Qing institutions for charity relief in China. It has been the subject of several recent studies, most likely because of its success in adapting to the demands of modern social welfare. 103 Established in 1878 in response to the Great Northern Famine, the institution 99 TMA, J0131 - 1 - 000021, June 1916. Request from the Yulitang for used clothing to give to its poor res idents. 100 TMA, J0131 - 1 - 000022, 1912. A series of these reports made in 1912 are held in the file group. 101 TMA, J0131 - 1 - 000024, July 1913. 102 TMA, J0128 - 2 - 000813 - 031, November 23, 1925. 103 which are available on their website, see: Vivienne Shue, "The Quality of Mercy: Confucian Charity and the Mixed Metaphors of Modernity in Tianjin," M odern China 32, no. 4 (2006): 411 - 52. Also see: Ruth - Port China," History 8, no. 4 (1997): 54 - 90. Su Minqiang provides detailed exposition of the Guangrentang archives i n his dissertation: Su Minqiang sheye yanjiu - Research on Tianjin Guangren Tang and its Women and Children Charities in the End of PhD diss., Nankai daxue, zhongguo jinxiandiashi, 2012. 46 chastity. Along with maintaining a shelter for women and their young children, the GRT also had its own clin ic that was equipped with foreign medicines. 104 The GRT helped children to find adoptive homes and young women to find husbands. 105 Another primary role was to help rehabilitate young girls who had been taken in as nuns at Buddhist temples to reenter normal li fe and evade the cloister. 106 By the early 1880s, the GRT expanded to include a drug rehabilitation clinic and helped to collect and bury dead bodies on the street. 107 In the mid - 1880s, the GRT continued to expand, adding a place for people to recover from s ickness Yangbingsuo ( ˘p ) and a ward for protecting and raising infants at the Bureau for Infant Protection , Baoyingju ( ). 108 While initially program that sent women to local s chools, and upon graduation, placed them in various factories to work. 109 By 1906, the GRT expanded again to build a kindergarten that included art classes. 110 Education classes emphasized both modern skills like spinning and weaving and traditional moral educ ation. 111 Another important expansion of the GRT 104 TMA, J0130 - 1 - 000008, 1878. 105 TMA, J0130 - 1 - 000020, 1878. 106 TMA, J0130 - 1 - 000047, 1878. 107 TMA, J0130 - 1 - 000031 and 000043, 1880. 108 TMA, J0130 - 1 - 000030, 1884. 109 TMA, J0130 - 1 - 00004 2, 1885. 110 TMA, J0130 - 1 - 000084, October 1906. 111 TMA, J0130 - 1 - 000209, 1916. For example, in June 1916, the Guangrentang set up a Xizihui, an organization for advocating Confucianism through teaching people how to read. Several years later, in May 1921, the GRT organized a group of refugee children to go to several factories in the city for training, see: TMA, J0130 - 1 - 000188, 1921. 47 took place in July 1923 when they rebuilt a factory that exclusively employed women. 112 On the one hand, this compromised with the traditional view that women should not work outside of the home, but at the same time preserved a strict gendered separation. 113 Support for the GRT came from a variety of places. From the beginning, it received d irect donations from the Zhili government. 114 It also received specific tax allotments including a special tax on foreign medicines and various assessed fines. 115 The GRT also received direct donations from foreign dignitaries. 116 So important were the activitie s of the GRT that the provincial government, on occasion, strong - armed Tianjin Chamber of Commerce members into giving donations. For example, after the flooding in 1911, the archives contain a series of letters between shop owners and the TJCOC begging f or donation extensions or reduced donation amounts. 117 The chamber also received threatening letters from provincial government authority about pressuring shop owners to donate to the GRT. 118 While the relationship between the Tianjin Chamber of 112 TMA, J0130 - 1 - 000296. July, 1923. 113 transition is discussion: Gail Hershatter, Women in China's Long Twentieth Century (Berkeley: Global, Area, and the family in contemporary China, see: Tamara Jacka, Andrew B. Kipnis and Sally Sargeson, Contemporary China: Society and Social Change (New York: Cambridge University Press, 2013). A volume of essays edited by Bryna Goodman and Wendy Larson begins with a discussion of the gendered separation of labor and the legacies of the imperial period, see: Bryna Goodman and Wendy Larson, Gender in Motion: Divisions of Labor and Cultural Change in Late Imperial and Modern China . (Lanham, MD: Rowman & Littlefield Publishers, 2005). 114 TMA, J0130 - 1 - 000002, 1879. 115 TMA, J0130 - 1 - 000010, 1879. 116 TMA, J0130 - 1 - 000099, 1909. The Japanese consular donated money to the Guangrentang. 117 TMA, J0128 - 2 - 002800 - 016, November 9, 1912. 118 TMA, J0128 - 2 - 002800 - 024, September 18, 1913. 48 Commerce and t he provincial government could be mutually supportive, as Mann points out, merchants usually organized in the first place to resist attempts at control and were bound to have an ambivalent relationship with the state. 119 The local municipal and provincial go vernments could impose their will upon local commerce, especially because there was not any clear legal protections against state appropriations from the private sector. Merchants responded with passive resistance in the form of delays and negotiation or t hrough collective actions to protest government demands. Although the Guangrentang was primarily active in providing long - term training and housing of poor women, it also collaborated with national charity organizations to coordinate regional relief. I n the early 1920s, the shelter helped to increase funding for the Tianjin Red Cross during the North China F amine. 120 Rather than accepting only women, the shelter also adopted whole families who were displaced by disaster and cast into poverty by the loss of the family provider. 121 The shelter responded to the needs of 122 Although the shelter was not a prison, and disobeying the rules could result in expulsion, some residents, especially prostitutes, did try to escape. 123 As Gail Hershatter explained, 119 Susan Mann, Local Merchants and the Chinese Bureaucracy, 1750 - 1950 (Stan ford, CA: Stanford University Press, 1987). 120 TMA, J0130 - 1 - 000220, October 1921. This record group refers to the collaboration between the Guangrentang and the Red Cross during the massive famine in North China during the early 1920s. 121 TMA, J0130 - 1 - 00 0187, April 1921. 122 TMA, J0130 - 1 - 000319, 1926. 123 TMA, J0130 - 1 - 000332, climb over the wall and escape; she was consequently asked to leave, 49 petition the court 124 Some prostitutes might temporarily seek the protection of the shelter to avoid lawsuits from brothel owners, but then choose to flee to previous customers, finding the lifestyle of the shel ter too restrictive. Some women, again often prostitutes, were addicted to opium and heroin and they were locked into the shelter as part of the recovery process. 125 However, the majority of the women in the shelter were destitute, and there was never a lac k of applicants hoping to escape poverty by entering the institution in this period. Where relief institutions like the Guangrentang sprung from a long history of Confucian benevolence and made careful changes to remain relevant but preserve traditional v alues, government organized charities placed much greater emphasis on harnessing the potential labor of unemployed poor in a way that brought no burden to the local economy. 126 Ideal Chinese workhouses sprung from private donations or lotteries and produced sufficient goods to support their workers. 127 The mission statement of the Tianjin Rehabilitation Institute, Jiaoyangyuan ( ), emphasized that it would provide professional training and place refugees and the homeless with jobs that required physical lab or. Of course, in reality, not all homeless people in Tianjin were suitable for physical labor. Many were injured, elderly or too young. Consequently, the reformatory 124 Gail Hershatter, Dangerous Pleasures Prost itution and Modernity in Twentieth - Century Shanghai (Berkeley: University of California Press, 1997), 269. 125 Hershatter, Dangerous Pleasures , 314. 126 Julia C. Strauss, Strong Institutions in Weak Polities: State Building in Republican China, 1927 - 1940 (Ox ford: Clarendon Press, 1998). 127 "China's Workhouse," The North - China Herald and Supreme Court & Consular Gazette (1870 - 1941) , (July 19, 1924): 85. 50 dexiyisuo , or wo rkhouse. 128 ), meaning morality or virtue. This implies that the (workhouse) original purpose was to train people in not simply how to make a living, but also in how to conform to a programs of poverty relief, traditional concerns did not simpl y dissolve and it would be incorrect to assume that Chinese workhouses followed exactly the English workhouses upon which they were patterned. In 1903, the Tianjin Xiyisuo established a branch specifically for training homeless vagrants to work and later a branch for reeducating criminals. 129 After ) to provide poor residents with low paying jobs that ensured two or three hearty meals each day that included meat. 130 The project s department would also provide workers from the Jiaoyuanyuan with seasonal clothing. 131 In this way much of the costs for poverty relief could be offset through the labor of residents while the state could convey compassion, ren , ( ) by provisioning for the welfare of the poor. Like the Yulitang, the Jiaoyangyuan also provided monthly reports to the city hall regarding its expenditures, donations of food and money received, records of who was currently residing at the 128 TMA, J0131 - 1 - 000050, April 1915. 129 TMA, J0166 - 1 - 000001, 1903. 130 TMA, J0131 - 1 - 000087, 1915. In April 1915, the Jiaoyangyuan requested back payments from the projects department for reimbursement for the cost of meals for residents providing labor for a duration of six months. 131 TMA, J0131 - 1 - 000093 and 94, 1916. In Ma y 1916, the Jiaoyangyuan requested the projects department to provide hats, summer clothes and a back payment of 126 yuan for the residents who worked there. 51 poorhouse and how many people had been helped. 132 In 1915, the Tianjin Yulitang , Jiaoyangsuo , which consolidated all of its assets. 133 Although the Yulitang served medical needs as previously mentioned, the problem of drug addiction was not seen as falling under the responsibilities of the Jiaoyangsuo , and addicts were often simply sent back to their native villages. 134 The Jiaoyangyuan demonstrated sensitivity to the religious sensibilities of its residents as well. Since many were Hui rather than Han Chinese, food and drink was kept clean to prevent conflict between the two ethnic groups. 135 Recognizing that refugees came to the Jiaoyangsuo seeking help in times of disaster, the charity also used its residents to coordinate relief in the provinces, sending refugees back to their hometowns with donations for village relief. 136 Another evidence importance to disaster relief are the large number of adoption records present in the year following the 1917 flood and specific educational work related to orphans. 137 While the Jiaoyangyuan provided many helpful services to urban socie ty, their care for individuals with mental illness was virtually non - existent. 138 132 TMA, J0131 - 1 - 000061, September 1915. 133 TMA, J0131 - 1 - 000053 through 57, 1915. A series of archives folders from August 1915 document this merger. 134 TMA, J0131 - 1 - 000095, May 1916. The county sent four drug addicts to the Jiaoyangyuan which sent them back to their native village. 135 TMA, J013 1 - 1 - 000110, June 1916. 136 TMA, J0131 - 1 - 000133, June 1917. After the major flood that effected five provinces in North China, Tianjin became a hub for distributing national relief. In this particular document, a man named Li Bingheng picked up his son who was temporarily a resident at the Jiaoyangyuan and also took donations back for the poor in his village. 137 TMA, J0131 - 1 - 000172, 1918. For example, the Jiaoyangyuan sent 60 orphans to the Yuyuan spinning mills to learn weaving skills in June of 1918. 52 Figure 1.2: Not Charity but a Chance to Earn . 139 Where the Jiaoyangyuan was active in providing shelter, training labor, and finding temporary work for residents. Foreign influenced organizations like the Tianjin Branch of the Chinese Red Cross set up their own factories as a form of poverty relief. In 1919, the manager of t his factory , Yuan Rutang , worked actively with the Jiaoyangyuan to recruit laborers to work for the Red Cross factory. 140 The work of the Red Cross was also funded by the Tianjin Chamber , again demonstrating the overlapping complex relationship between priva te charity, government relief institutions, and sources of funding. 141 The Tianjin Chamber was unlikely to support the Red Cross if its activ it ies The Tianjin branch o f the Red Cross (TJRC) also reported all of the donations it received 138 TMA, J0131 - 1 - 000282, 1922. Several reports like this letter to the police department in January 1922 what caused his problem or his eventual demise. 139 Asia and the Americas 21, (June): 544. 140 TMA, J0131 - 1 - 000226, September 1919. 141 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 002210, 1911. 53 to the TJCOC showing that the chamber acted in a semi - state capacity regulating private charity. 142 The overlapping leadership of the Tianjin Chamber and the Tianjin Red Cross is also r evealing. During major disasters like the 1917 flood, the TJRC requested personnel from the TJCOC to help with managing relief. 143 Since the chamber was under pressure from the government to respond to its requests to deal with specific relief problems, it i s likely that these personnel guided private charity in a way that responded to municipal government concerns. However, this kind of influence could flow in both directions. In 1922, the Red Cross worked with the chamber of commerce to come up with new regulations for all Christian charities protecting women and children. 144 Here, a private charity worked with a semi - state organization to develop local municipal charity regulations that would be later published into law. 145 As an organization with a nationa l network of charities, the Red Cross could also fill gaps within local charity needs that the chamber was unable or unwilling to fulfill. For example, in 1926 the Red Cross began supporting and providing treatment to wounded soldiers in N orth China and wo rking with the chamber, covered the pharmaceutical costs incurred by the clinics actively supporting them. 146 The name of the 142 TMA, J0128 - 2 - 002938 - 042, January 7, 1918. 143 TMA, J0128 - 2 - 002939, 1917. This record group from 1917 contains a series of requests from the Tianjin Red Cross for personnel from the TJCOC. 144 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 005429 - 013, April 29, 1922. 145 These laws and regulations would then be published in local newspapers like the Dagongbao and in internally circulated documents like the Tianjin Municipal Gazetteer . 146 TMA, J0128 - 2 - 002161. This record group contains several documents between the Chamber of Commerce and the Tianjin Red Cross regarding providing help for wounded soldiers. 54 Red Cross branch specifically designated for working with relieving war related refugees was the Bingzai Jiujihui ( ). 147 While the majority of funding came from the local merchants, donations also came from the national network of the China Red Cross, connecting Tianjin philanthropists with philanthropist in cities across China. Again, here we see that the work of philanthropy was also promoting a broader vision of China to aid workers which emphasized a nationwide solidarity. As Reeves explains, the Chinese Red Cross Society cultivated new patterns of elite participation in public affairs and encouraged a transition from local in itiatives to a sustained national effort. 148 Much of the funding for the Tianjin branch was provided by donations made by the jockey clubs in the international settlement. Horse racing became a popular pastime in concession cities, and while the Tianjin t rack never possessed the clout of those in Shanghai or Hong Kong, it became one of the central social events of Tianjin high society in the early twentieth century. While these donations were made by private individuals, by the Nanjing Decade all donation s were processed through the city financial bureau. 149 This administrative step provides evidence for two important conclusions. First, Nationalist city administers understood that control of philanthropic donations was an important evidence of state legitim acy and second that the work of the Red Cross closely aligned with the social welfare values of the city government which constantly struggled to fund its social relief projects. 147 TMA, J0128 - 2 - 002802, 1913. 148 Caroline Beth Reeves, "The Power of Mercy: The Chinese Red Cross Society, 1900 - 1937," (Order No. 9832302, Harvard University, 1998). 149 SZGB 16, (December 7, 1929): 34. 55 Beyond its direct influence though charity work, the Tianjin Red Cross als o provided an important setting where Chinese social workers gained experience before serving in city government posts. For instance , when the Tianjin V agrant R eeducation S helter and the #1 Poor Workhouse were consolidated into the #1 Poor Relief House, t he special government hired Zhao Pinqin ( C¥ ) as an honorary committee member because of his previous experience as the head of the Tianjin Red Cross. 150 Placing members of national relief agencies into significant advisory positions for municipal charities suggests that the influence of national philanthropic movements on regional and urban specific philanthropy was magnified by cross institution al collaboration and must be considered beyond simple membership numbers or state domination of philanthropic givi ng. Local institutions of poverty relief also developed their own national connections with sister institutions in other cities. For example, the #1 Orphanage in Tianjin sent copies of its regulations and funding to the #1 Orphanage in Beijing. These kinds of exchanges helped to standardize policies that were not always effectively regulated under the unstable management of the Beiyang government and demonstrate the porous nature of political boundaries during the Warlord Period. 151 During the extreme f amine of the 1920s, the Shanghai Guangrentang sent donations to the Tianjin GRT and adopted several refugee children. 152 Along with education, sheltering and finding work for refugees and urban poor, charity organizations in the city also worked to identify the 150 SZGB 16, (D ecember 22, 1929): 20. 151 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 002785 - 037, 1912. 152 TMA, J0130 - 1 - 000169, October 1920. 56 native place of residents and send them back to their towns and villages. This form of relief often took the form of free transportation, food for the journey, and occasionally military or police escort to ensure security. 153 So far I have mainly focused on the many institutions that were active in helping to spread poverty relief and how that relief began to change t o reflect modern concerns. However, it is also apparent that common people began to approach their government officials with increased boldness, and utilizing terminology that would resonate with their concerns. In one instance, a village representative named Li Yuting approached his county officer for money to prevent displaced immigrants from drifting and begging. 154 Villagers from surrounding districts also approached the Tianjin Chamber directly to ask for disaster relief. 155 Additionally, this type of pl ea to the benevolence of leaders was demonstrated after a Tianjin fire severely injured several businessmen. These men appealed through the Tianjin Chamber of Commerce to Yuan Shikai for financial relief. 156 The situation was so serious that the Beijing Ch amber sent their members to each branch in Tianjin and Zhili to investigate and provide help. 157 Or as one anonymous 153 TMA, J0131 - 1 - 000296, January 1923, provides a list of organizations sending poor people back to their native place. 154 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 002172 - 011, 1909. The key term here is liuli ( #q/ë ) which means to wander about. 155 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 000947, 1908, contains numerous requests for relief after a flood made by individual village representatives directly to the TJCOC. This demonstrates that the Tianjin chamber played an i mportant role in relieving the local area after disaster. 156 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 002722, January 30, 1912. This record group contains a series of communications regarding a group of businessmen who were injured and robbed during a fire. These individuals made m ultiple appeals to the Tianjin Chamber, to the Zhili Provincial Governor Zhang Xiluan and even Yuan Shikai, who by this time was in the process of overseeing the abdication of the last Qing emperor, Puyi. 157 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 008711, 1914. This record group pr imarily discusses relief for those businessmen affected by the fire. 57 158 Tianjin Police and Confucian Benevolen ce . The requests for aid which poured into the offices of the Zhili Relief Bureau demonstrated that disaster victims recognized the authority of the Beiyang government. As their government, it was responsible for meeting their needs. Police also interacte d with refugees on a daily personal level, representing another way that the new state was able to exert its influence. publican modern police state. 159 However, the presence of police agents of modernity sent mixed messages about how the government was going to respond to the emerging expec tations concerning the treatment of disaster victims. In fact, these new emissaries of state control In the existing literature , within their relationship to the urban poor, Janet Chen, Ru th Rogaski, and David Strand have each argued that the new police eventually came to exert a meddlesome control on nearly every aspect of ordinary life. 160 Before the Qing 158 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 002600 - 046, December 25, 1913. 159 For example, see: Guo Xuezhi, China's Security State: Philosophy, Evolution, and Politics (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2012 ). 160 Janet Chen discusses how police chief Zhao Bingju was ordered by Yuan Shikai to set up work houses where beggars were forced to provide services to the city, see: Janet Chen, Guilty of Indigence (Princeton: Princeton University Press 2012), 25. David Strand argues that police were educated to intrude as part of the cultural context of Confucian governance, see: David Strand, Rickshaw Beijing: City People and Politics in the 1920s hygiene campaigns demonstrates how police often forcibly exposed the private physical world to public scrutiny and intruded into the homes of poor urban dwellers, see: Ruth Rogaski, Hygienic Modernity: Meanings of Health and Disease in Treaty - port China ( Berkeley: University of California Press, 2004). 58 established a national police force in a Western style, Chinese law enforcement was ha ndled by yamen officials charged with hunting down criminals , bukuai , and local militias organized for local defense called baojia. 161 In addition to local defense from bandits and law enforcement, the baojia sometimes functioned to collect taxes and provide government surveillance. 162 They also served the public welfare by organizing fire brigades, regulating grain shops, and operating wi nter soup kitchens each year. 163 They were not, h owever, civilian governed, public, specialized, and professional, and thus were not like the police forces in contemporary liberal democracies. Qing forces were largely unspecialized and often drawn from the r anks of military rejects. 164 Alison Dray - 165 By the 19 th century, the baojia system had become largely ineffective and about as corrupt as the criminals they were supposed to a pprehend. 166 161 T. F. Wade, "ART. II. the Army of the Chinese Empire: Its Two Great Divisions, the Bannermen or National Guard, and the Green Standard or Provincial Troops; their Organization, Locations, Pay, Condition, & c." The Chinese Repository 1832 - 1851 (July 1, 1851): 363, ProQuest doi: 1426571982. 162 Prasenjit Duara, Culture, Power, and the State: Rural North China, 1900 - 1942 (Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 1988): 122. He Wenping provides an interesting case study of the modernization process of one of these local militia groups, the Changsha Street Corps, and how this organization functioned in tandem with a growing modern police force which began to take over its responsibilities at social management, see: He Wenping, "The Street Corps of Changsha around 1920," Journal of Modern Chinese History 8, no. 1(2014): 63 - 86. 163 Alison J. Dray - jing Gendarmerie, 1900 - Modern China 33, no. 3 (July 2007): 352. 164 For more regarding how expectations towards police have changed in the modern period, see: David H. Law & Society Review 30, no. 3 (1996): 585 - 606. 165 Alison J. Dray - - Modern China 33, no. 3 (July 2007): Fn. 1. 166 Letters from a Chinese Magistrate: Reprinted from the Peking & Tientsin Times March, 1920, (Tientsin: Tientsin Press, limited, 192 0): 115. 59 It was not until the dramatic failure of the Qing during the First Sino - Japan War (1894 - 1895) that Qing modernizers really focused on the need to develop a national police force as part of a program of self - colonization. Late Qing modernizers s aw bringing China into compliance with international legal standards not as a fetishization of Western models, but as a strategic means to undermine the legitimacy of foreign governments maintaining their own police forces in extraterritorial settlements. 167 From the response in the Western press, it is clear that the international community responded positively to these attempts at modernizing the police. 168 Tianjin is a particularly important context for discussing this early stage of Chinese police histor modernization reforms while he served as viceroy of Zhili Province. Although there had been previous attempts to modernize the police, such as the Hunan Bureau of Protection and Defense, - wide effort. 169 He began his work in Zhili by establishing the Baoding Police Bureau, and in 1902 when Chinese control was reestablished over Tianjin, he moved his administration to the city from Baodi ng and increased the number of new police in Tianjin to around 3000. He also founded several police academies including the Baoding Police School, the Northern 167 Comparative Studies in Society and History 52, no. 4 (2010): 886. 168 Several articles in the New York and London Times prai New York Times 1857 - 1922, China and the The Times, London, England, Issue 36848, (Saturday, August 16, 1902): 3. 169 , Qingmo jingcha zhidu yanjiu , 1894 - 1911 , 1894 - 1911 [Study on the Police System in Late Qing, 1894 - 1911], (PhD diss., Xi nan zhengfa daxue, xianfa yu xingzheng faxue, 2011). 60 High Police School and implemented a series of police regulations that were utilized as the bas is for late Qing national police reform and implementation. The Tianjin Police Academy was under the guidance of Zhao Bing - jun who was became the training center for police Emphasizing the continued importance of Tianjin as a model for the national police system, Stephen MacKinnon remark s that even after Zhao Bin - jun was appointed vice - dynasty f ell in 1911 - from Beijing and use it as a national model. 170 police were trained Qing banner forces, their education was provided by Japanese advisors. 171 - military force, headed by retired navy captain Cao Jiaxiang and his assistant He Shouren, also an ex - naval officer. 172 The new police system faced several challe nges, not least of which was the bad reputation of the baojia yamen established their authority by exerting it. Within the first few months of establishing the 170 Stephen MacKinnon, Power and Politics in Late Imperial China: Yuan Shi - kai in Beijing and Tianjin, 1901 - 1908 (Berkeley: University of California Press, 1980), 155. 171 Ruth Rogaski points out that Japan ese advisors had been training Tianjin sanitation police as early as the 1890s, see: Rogaski, Hygienic Modernity , 14. 172 "Notes on Native Affairs," The North - China Herald and Supreme Court & Consular Gazette 1870 - 1941 ( June 25 1902): 1253. 61 new police presence in Tianjin, nume rous criminals were sentenced. The force worked to establish a high reputation. Any complaints made against officers were taken seriously and in the first year alone around 100 corrupt officers were reprimanded. 173 The effective enforcement of the law did es tablish legitimacy, and at the same time the new police also participated in civil government and acts of philanthropy that further established their reputation as the benevolence of the Beiyang government. The Tianjin police performed diverse social funct ions from organizing fire brigades to managing disaster relief and providing other forms of charity. This expanded participation in Tianjin civil society meant that the identity of these police officers was much more complex than their forbearers. In ad dition to the officers in the various districts of the city, there were Bohai Guanchashi ( ). 174 Along with directly operating soup kitchens and institution for ensuring that government charities rece ived their financial support. The Beiyang government often struggled to meet its financial obligations. Rather than supporting charity institutions through a general city budget organized by a treasury department, specific special taxes were levied from a variety of sources ranging from transportation taxes to taxes on specific s hops or trades. The police were responsible for collecting these taxes, and as a consequence, they helped to 173 Recognizing this positive reputation is important as so much of the history written about police during the Republican period focuses on their corruption and exploitation. 174 TMA, J0131 - 1 - 000027, December 1913, Orders from the Bohai Guanchashi on receiving poor into the city. 62 ensure public institutions received their funding each month. 175 This included direct support for poor shelters like the Jiaoyangyuan and schools fo r poor children. 176 For the Jiaoyangyuan, besides collecting taxes from various shops, there was also a specific tax on prostitution called the flower donation ( 8ᡕ ) which became a part of the regular operation budget of the reformatory. 177 Taxing prostitution was a common way for both the Beiyang government and later, the Nationalists, to support their modernization and relief campaigns among the urban poor and disposed. In the next chapter, I will discuss in greater depth how this tax supported the creation o An unprecedented concern for gathering accurate scientific statistical data emerged under the Beiyang government and Nationalist held territories with a fervor that would not be replicated in China until the 1980s. Al though often ineffective and incomplete, this passion for data was clearly demonstrated by the special branch of the Tianjin police which focused on monitoring flood conditions. This department, aptly shuijing ( "dAŒ ), collected det ailed information about the water levels of rivers surrounding Tianjin and reported local attempts at water redirection. During emergencies, these police helped to coordinate villager la bor in building dikes with sand bags and constructing dams. 178 They als o operated boats that were used to rescue peasants trapped by flood waters. 175 TMA, J0131 - 1 - 000069, December 1915. The Tianjin police headquarters ordered the west branch of the third city district to use half of its monthly tax revenue to support the operation of a school for poor people. 176 TMA, J0131 - 1 - 000190, Augus t 1919. 177 TMA, J0131 - 1 - 000063, September 1915. 178 YSB August 6, 1917. 63 reaching areas. Groups of refugees would often arrive in the city without warning and could q uickly number in the tens of thousands. Although discussion among elite philanthropists on how to distribute goods to the most - needy , as opposed to the less needy - poor , was a point of intense debate in late Imperial China, it was not until the twentieth c entury that serious attempts to rationalize, regulate, and limit food distribution to refugees occurred or was really even possible. 179 Police and affiliated volunteers were required to carefully observe and record aid recipients and protect against those wh o would exploit the chaos. This included refugees that would travel to different distribution points to receive overlapping aid. As local government strained to meet disaster needs, it also began to demand that private charities provide records of who re ceived relief. Consequently, the police served another function as the primary frontline statisticians of the new Republic. Closely related to this growing regulation of charity was the emergence and solidification of territorial jurisdiction. While th e concept of jurisdiction may seem obvious in the twenty - first century, in China as elsewhere, it developed not only within modern legal institutions, but also a trajectory that was distinctly associated with Chinese tradition. Modernization stimulated a transition from authority that followed relationships of status based on official titles and the individual towards a legal system rationalized on cartography and districting. The y influenced by two classical interpretations of the inner/outer binary. The first, 179 The Art of Doing Good . 64 Han Chinese Culturalism, emerged strongly after the fall of the Yuan Dynasty emphasized the concepts of the inner , nei , and the outer , wai , to distinguish separations betw een Chinese and their non - Chinese neighbors under the authority of the ethnocentric Ming Dynasty. 180 For example, the word for foreigner, ( ) , translates directly as outside nation people . In the second, these terms were used to delimit an equally rigid distinction between the realm of men and women, between the central and the peripheral. 181 Although, as Rosenlee points out, in reality these worlds were much more porous, the myth of separation is distinctively present as a cultural institution. As first responders to the displaced peasants that appeared in Tianjin seeking food and work when famine struck the countryside, the police were tasked to identify non - urban residents as , when over a hundred peasants arrived suddenly in early July 1917 in the wake of a flood that would eventually come to devastate the city, police director Yang ordered that resources from a Sichuan R elief F und would be used to help them. In addition, police officers would escort the displaced peasants outside the city to s ettle on unoccupied land. By settling non - urban residents outside the city rather than in city shelters, it becomes clear that this nei/wai distinction was also increasingly important in separating the city 180 Benjamin A. Elman, A Cultural History of Civil Examinations in Late Imperial China (Berkeley: University of California Press, 2000), 55. 181 Li - - Confucianism and Women a Philosophical Interpretation (Albany: State University of New York Press, 2006), 69 - 94. 65 from the country. 182 Furthermore, the police were demonstrating that they possessed the authority for distant regional charity causes by responding to urgent local needs. 183 The police task of sending refugees home could be a costly one for both the refugees and the local civilian bureaucracy. During the same flood, the Tianjin police distributed over 18,000 silver dollars, dayang , to refugees returning to their homes to cover both the expenses of traveling and provide refugees with meager access to food. In this instance, the Tianjin Police Department wo rked closely with local gentry and merchants to raise the necessary funds and arrange low cost transportation. 184 However, as an article in the Yishibao reports, rural refugees were not always willing to return home where famine and death often awaited them. This sometimes led to physical confrontations between refugees and police. 185 Yao Yangjing ( ), a University of Chicago sociologist and a Chinese Republican , argued that much of the crime in China was the result of rural migrants failing to adapt to the rapidly changing urban 182 Some Chinese scholars have argued that such rigid recognition of a distinctly urban versus rural identity is a product of a post - Marxist neo - capitalist economy, however clearly these divisions already possessed great significance by the Republican period if not earlier. Bao Lufang liudong renkou fanzui Beijing fanzui wenti de 80 nian duibi yanjiu - L˚NÈ,´ 80 [Urban Adaptation and Rural Migrants Crime - A Comparative Study of Mr. Yan Zhon gguo Nongye Daxue Xuebao, Shehuike Xueban 24, no. 4 (December 2007). 183 [The Police Bureau Gave Refugees Sichuan YSB, July 2, 1917. 184 Zhili Tianjin jingchating shuizai jizhen chu zheng xin lu, chengbao zhe gao Cx [Zhili Tianjin Police Department Emergency Flood Relief Record, Draft Report] no publisher, (1917): 412, (Material provided by Dr. Ren Yunlan at the Tianjin Social Science Research Institute). 185 Ren Yunlan zhanluan qijian Tianjin chengshi de shehui jiuzhu, 1912 - 1936 [Tianjin Urban Relief of Famine and War during the Republican Period, 1912 - Zhongguo shehui jingjishi yanjiu Tianjin shehui kexueyuan, lishi yanjiusuo 2, (2005). 66 environment. Consequently, they resorted to crime primarily as a means to achieving subsistence survival. At the same time, bandits arose in areas of famine which further turned suspicion against the rural migrants. Yao argued that a lthough the surplus rural labor in cities clearly had positive effects on urban development, it also facilitated the social marginalization of large urban groups who became dispossessed of traditional systems of mutual help and support. These included a b reakdown in the family system as rural migrants organized in much smaller units within the city and became disassociated from traditional guild networks which struggled increasingly to compete with modernized industry. Rural migrants were even detached fro m their source of traditional ethics as ancestral halls and the preservation of ritual practices were left in the villages. 186 As a result of these hardships, police duties not only consisted of helping to provide for the financial needs of ci ty charities, the police also provided crime control drawn the most ire from Western scholars. 187 Certainly, Tianjin police were guilty of using a heavy hand to round up or disperse street undesirables. For example, in the wake of the 1917 flood, baton - wielding police sent refugees scattering in an attempt to prevent the spread of plague. 188 However, displays of police authority to discipline were sometimes welcome by resid Jiaoyangyuan sometimes invited the police to convince unruly or lazy residents to 186 Ya o Yanjing ( Yen Ching - American Journal of Sociology 40, no. 3 (University of Chicago Press: 1934): 298 308. 187 Janet Chen, for instance, argues that such police activities represented if not contributed to the Guilty of Indigence. Policing Shanghai 1927 - 1937 (Berkeley: University of California Press, 1995). 188 Peking Daily News (1914 - 1917) , English ed. 5 (October 2, 1917). 67 conform, they also provided a secure and stabilizing force against theft and even murder that sometimes occurred in the reformatory. 189 The police also helped the Confucian 190 And yet, another dimension must be considered when interpreting the relationship between local police and refugees; Confucian paternalism. Frederic Wakeman describes 191 This relationship was vividly expressed by the response of Tianjin Police Chief, Yang Yita i, whose district police fed and housed over 43,000 refugees in the city, often right on police premises. 192 In the first months of the flood, police personnel distributed over 50,000 yuan of relief goods. In a much more isolated but equally powerful exampl e of this, one article reports that the Tianjin Water Police, after finding a box in which two dead and one nearly dead child was discovered, nursed the living child back to health. The police also assigned labor jobs to refugees and arranged for their lo nger term employment needs. These jobs were often specifically related to flood recovery activities. Additionally, the and employment. 189 TMA, J0131 - 1 - 000264, 1920. For example, in November, the Jiaoy angyuan requested help from the police to subdue Zhou Qinyuan who killed several other residents. 190 TMA, J0130 - 1 - 000128, December 1913. For example, when a resident from the Guangrentang, Duan Shun, returned to the shelter after her husband Zhai Enhua bea t her, the institution contacted the police to punish her husband. 191 Wakeman, Policing Shanghai, 90. 192 "The Deluge in Tientsin," Peking Daily News (1914 - 1917) , English ed. 5 (October 2, 1917). Also see: "Flood Conditions in the Native City of Tientsin," Millard's Review of the Far East (1917 - 1919) : 186. 68 Prominent Tianjin news outlets praised the work of the police. In particular, officers as heroic figures who not only rescued residents from flooded areas, but also distributed bread and other life sustaining foods. Officers in muddied uniforms worked alongside villagers to reinforce embankments to prevent breaching and patrolled evacuated areas for looters on horseback. 193 Even the Tianjin Civilian Coastguard, who often appeared as incompetent for their failure to accurately predict and prevent the severity of the flood, were championed as protectors of the people who transported much needed supplies to refugees. Almost all of the soup kitchens operated within refugee camps were at least partially staffed by police personnel. 194 Police leadership also extended to post - disaster relief, as they supervised the raising of funds to lend to farmers to resume agricultural production and worked to stabilize food prices. 195 Nevertheless, tensions did arise between the police and some villag ers who attempted to damage dikes which favored some homes over others. 196 Not only did the Tianjin police take the most active role in relieving victims of the 1917 flood, they also sought to lead and coordinate the relief work of private chari ty organizations. This was mirrored in Beijing during meetings of the Flood Relief Union Association. A combination of foreign charities, prominent Chinese philanthropists, and 193 [The National Police Order Cavalry to YSB , September 25, 1917. 194 (Ž˛Ł#U YSB , October 1, 1917. 195 . [The minutes of the Urgent Relief Commission YSB August 8, 1918. 196 [Campaign to suppr ess villagers from digging up YSB , October 2, 1917. 69 197 While the for eign response to Chinese police leadership was on the whole positive, occasionally there was some misunderstanding , if not outright antagonism , between native and foreign relief. This was captured in an article submitted by the Red Cross which charged Tian jin Police Chief Yang Yitai with unnecessary suspicion which impeded their work. Apparently, Yang had sent officers to Red Cross meetings to interrogate them on their activities. 198 Behind this suspicion lay concerns that were fundamentally tied to the turb ulent politics of the Beiyang government after Sun Zhongshan instigated the Constitution Protection Movement (which declared war on the Beiyang factions) and established his headquarters in Shanghai. That the national leadership of the Red Cross was closel y tied to both the Guomindang and the Shanghai business community could not have escaped the notice of the Tianjin chief of police and inevitably prominent member s of the Zhili clique. Competing Voices: Reporting on 1917 Flood and 1920 Famine . Because of endless war, the refugee can find no rest. All he can do is to weep for his family lost forever. With the sound of gunfire, he flees with nothing in his pockets. His body shakes in the cold winter air; he searches for help, but there is no on e to hear his cry upon the desolate empty road. To take flight with nothing is wretched, but when war comes what other choice is there? The world is vast, but there is no place to rest his weary head. With pale sweating face he will beg every stranger for some left over crumb. His heels are cracked and bleeding from walking all day long. With empty belly he lies down in the empty gateways of abandoned himself and waits for the soldiers t o pass. The ground is his bed; he 197 Peking Gazette (1915 - 1917) , October 18, 1917, 6. ProQuest Historical Newspapers: Chinese Newspapers Collection , http://ezproxy.msu.edu.proxy1.cl.msu.edu/login?url=http://search.proquest.com.proxy1.cl.msu.edu/docvie w/1416676255?accountid=12598. 198 "The Red Cross Society: Unnecessary Suspicion of the Tientsin Police Chief," Peking Gazette (1915 - 1917) , November 2, 1917, 7. ProQuest Historical Newspapers: Chinese Newspapers , http://ezproxy.msu.edu.proxy1.cl.msu.edu/login?url=http://search.proquest.com.proxy1.cl.msu.edu/docvie w/1416678171?accountid=12598. 70 wanders aimlessly through the streets, his family is dead and broken he has no way to survive. He gazes towards his home town longing, but fears returning to only learn his home has already become a grave yard. It is a s though his heart has been deep fried in oil. He curses god and his misfortune. Holding a stick and a big spoon, he begs for food. The blood that flows from the wounds that cover his body are like water. The disaster relief never seems to find him. His breath is heavy and tired whenever he stops to rest. He eats the wind along the road. So far from home, he lingers to survive. Hunger and cold have stolen his happiness. He would rather die soon to escape the suffering of this wandering existence. His on ly prayer is for a quick end to this painful life. 199 The history of print journalism in Tianjin is a vibrant one; by 1919 the city offered more than ninety Chinese and foreign language publications. Some papers focused on business and trade while undergr ound communist newspapers circulated fomenting anti - Japanese sentiment. Racy tabloid newspapers became popular and focused on fashion, Western theater and rumor. However, when it came to professional journalism, two newspapers in Tianjin stood out, the D agongbao ( ) and the Yishibao ( ). 200 short reign as emperor, both enjoyed substantial freedom. 201 The founder of the Yishibao was a Belgium Catholic missionary named Frederic Lebbe , Lei M ingyuan who was assigned to the Wanghailou Church in 1906. Along with his priestly duties, Lebbe tried to combine public education and charity work. After he first arrived, he established the Chenzhen Primary School and the Shenshu Female 199 This kind of poem repeatedly appears in the YSB and patterns Qing poetic devises. Zhang Dincheng , 1916): 16. 200 Although the Dagongbao ( ) was also highly respected, I will focus on the Yishibao here primarily for its focus on socia l welfare. 201 Ma Yi Pœ8ª , Tianjin xinwen chuanbo shi gangyao [An Outline History of the Spread of Tianjin News Media], (Yi Beijing: Xinhua chubanshe, 2005), 82. 71 School, widely r ecruiting students from both inside and outside the Catholic Church. After the Xinghai Revolution, Lebbe became increasingly interested in Chinese governance and began lecturing on global politics, economic socialism, and modern law at Tianjin University. These courses became very popular among the elite and in 1912, he and Ying Lianzhi began the first weekly Catholic newspaper, the Wangyilu , later Yishizhu Ribao . Three years later he established the Yishibao ( YSB ), the title of which can be translated a s The Social Welfare . 202 Unlike most Chinese language newspapers which were established within the foreign concessions, Lebbe decided to set up the headquarters for the newspaper in the Chinese area of the city. Part of the reason Lebbe gained such respect among Chinese readers was his radical position that church leaders should give up the protection offered by their foreign status and become Chinese citizens. He created controversy in 1916 when he denounced the French consul for collaborating with the ch urch to annex a portion of land surrounding the church for the French concession (the Laoxikai Incident). In response to the Laoxikai Incident, Chinese working in the French concession and in French owned factories launched a strike which Lebbe portrayed p ositively in his paper. This drew the ire of French missionaries , and Lebbe was ordered back to Europe in 1918. Fortunately for the future of the paper, the staff at the YSB were almost entirely Chinese and the paper continued to thrive until its end in 1949. 203 Lebbe eventually became a Chinese citizen in 1928 and committed the remainder of his life to philanthropic causes in China. 202 Jean - - Vincent Lebbe 1877 - Biographical Dictionary of Chines e Christianity , (2005 - 2012), http://www.bdcconline.net/en/stories/l/lebbe - fredericvincent.php . 203 With the exception of when it moved to Chongqing during the Sino - Japanese War . 72 The 1917 flood represented a major challenge to stability in Northern China. The YSB was an important forum for the public discussion and response to the flood. Daily reports of river water levels were published from both government and private sources. This allowed for a public debate on how to best respond to and alleviate the flooded areas around and within the city. Ar ticles often centered on how villagers came together to fight back rising river levels to temporarily save their homes. These kinds of articles emphasized a sense of self - reliance and local responsibility for managing flood waters. Villagers are described in heroic terms as they work ceaselessly constructing dikes and dams. 204 Details of flood conditions ranged from the scientific to the trivial, yet even in trivial details, a certain sense of optimism was captured. A report by the water police mention ed flooded homes but added that goods had been rescued and moved to a higher place. 205 When sandbags were not available, villagers piled up soil around temples and other valuable sites to protect them. Flooding also affected foreign concessions, stopping in dustry. At the end of many articles reporting on flood conditions, reporters also published recommendations for further action from members of the community, journalists themselves, or government officials. These reports also published sometimes clearly e mbarrassing disagreements between government officials and local residents. One of the controversies that arose was disputes over labor and territory. Articles sometimes presented encouraging portrayals of the loyalty among villagers of the same community, like the 200 residents from Dingzigu ( ) Village that had worked to 204 YSB August 6, 1917. 205 Ibid. 73 build a dam from tree branches and sandbags which they covered with soil to block the flood waters. However, conflicts between villages were less inspiring; for example, the dam built to stop flood waters from the Xiaxi River ( ) was constructed with no help from nearby Xigu or Yuzhuang ( ) V illages since their farmlands were not threatened. 206 Floods in the villages surrounding Tianjin were commonplace, so residents suffe red during times of flooding, but many lived in grass huts , chaicao chang ( ) that could be easily rebuilt after the flood waters receded. A greater sense of urgency came from the threat to urban Tianjin, which might be completely flooded if the water le vel continued to increase. A journalist, who did not use his name openly, criticized uch useless, they just get their salaries but never do anything. If the government does not 207 As flooding became more frequent, entire villages of refugees began to ma ke their way to the city center, setting up temporary encampments near the city gates. By allowing editorials that lambasted ineffective government policies, print media could agitate governmental reform. However, more generally, journalism played the i mportant role of keeping the plight of disaster victims in the public consciousness. Rather than merely report the facts of the water levels, it appealed to a sense of empathy with the 206 YSB, August 6, 1917. 207 Ibid. 74 reader at the same time as it taught readers how they should feel. Sen sitizing the urban public to the terrible situation faced by disaster victims would prove ever more important as rural and suburban refugees began to require increased taxes and support from city dwellers. 208 Charity as Nationalism . To manage flood relief , the Beiyang government appointed Xiong Xiling, who previously served from 1913 - 1914 as premier of the Republic of China. After his brief rise to political authority, Xiong spent the remainder of his life working on social causes in China. His strategy f or encouraging contributions during the 1917 disaster included issuing special awards to individuals who made major donations to the relief. 209 Not only were these awards a symbol of generosity that could be displayed to other social elite, they often came w ith tax incentives for those donating. The TJCOC held lotteries to raise funds for disaster assistance. They asked each of their branch and business shops to purchase lottery tickets which promised the possibility of return on donations while sharing som 210 As discussed earlier in this chapter, there were diverse methods for Tianjin charities and the city government to raise funding for various relief organizations and emergency disaster events. One of the most important avenues for raising funds was to awareness and garnering support, advertisements for charities often informed or required 208 YSB , August 6, 1917. 209 TMA, J0128 - 2 - 002939 - 052, December 9, 1917. 210 ˙†&® YSB , October 28, 1920. 75 the approval of the Tianjin Cham ber of Commerce. 211 Negative reporting on charity ( ) organizations could severely impact their reputations and influence the donations they received. Slander could even spark legal battles. 212 To illustrate the volatility that could surround charity funding, I will explicate the brief life of the Save the Nation Association , Jiùguó ( ). The Save the Nation Association was started in Shanghai in 1915 in response to Japanese I mperialism and the issuing of the Twenty - One Demands. By May of that year, the tension came to a head as the Japanese continued to force a diplomatic compromise under threat of invasion. In response, the Chinese began a spontaneous nationwide boycott of Ja panese goods that drastically reduced exports to China. The suggestion to create a patriotic fund first appeared in Shanghai in the Shenbao newspaper, in early April. By the 7 th , the first donations to the fund had already been given. The association ai med to protect the country by collecting 50 million yuan to buy modern weapons, build up industries to compete with Japanese goods, and establish schools to train unskilled labor. Although Yuan Shikai praised the fund, he nevertheless succumbed to the Japa nese pressure and signed a treaty approving most of the demands. In Tianjin, the support for the fund was quite high and the chamber of commerce was the very first organization nationwide to respond to the invitation for donations issued from Shanghai on April 8 th . Consequently, the Save the Nation Association immediately established a local branch in the city. From May to June, the Zhili Save the 211 TMA, J0128 - 2 - 002813 - 003, August 6, 1913. In t his telegraph, the Red Cross requests the Tianjin Chamber to inform all the newspapers around the city to immediately begin collecting donations. 212 TMA, J0130 - 1 - 000217, 1922. For example, in July, the Guangrentang charged the Huaxing Printing Bureau wit h publishing an article in the news which damaged their reputation. 76 Nation Patriotic Fund had three massive support drives in different areas of Tianjin. In total, they colle cted over $600,000 silver. Everyone was involved, including beggars and prostitutes. There were many charity performances to collect the money and by September of 1915, nationwide, they had collected more than $8 million in silver. The growing popularity of the movement began to also draw some negative attention. T he Zhili P rovincial G overnment kept a watchful eye on the fund raising activities, fearing that it might affect international policy. Unsurprisingly, the Japanese were also quite concerned, an d began a campaign to derail the initiative. The Tianjin Daily plans to declare himself emperor by suggesting that the Chouanhui organization had borrowed $ 2 million silver from this fund. This organization was known to support Even though the report proved to be untrue, many demanded their money back and consequently the patriotic fund bega n to collapse. The Shanghai headquarters for the fund faced many doubts and by November 5, 1915, decided to return the funds in Shanghai. When this news arrived in Tianjin , the branch was very disappointed and faced internal disagreement on how to respond . This disagreement among major donors who attended the meeting proved too divisive and on July 18, 1916, the Tianjin branch also decided to return the money they had collected. Although this movement failed, it raised a significant amount of money durin g its brief existence and similar Save the Nation funds would continue to gain popularity and remain active in Tianjin. In addition, during the massive drought and famine of the early 1920s, the Tianjin Chamber conferred with the 77 Red Cross to utilize some of these funds for the disaster. 213 Using nationalism to stimulate giving was an important motivator for many forms of relief work. 214 Figure 1.3: Map Showing United War Work Campaign Parade . 215 000 laborers who were sent to build French and British lines during the war to help with the 213 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 003913, 1916, records 0036 through 0285 regard this fund. 214 TMA, J0128 - 2 - 003052, 1921. For several additional documents regarding saving the nation, disaster relief, and an ti - Japanese nationalism. 215 - 18, 1918, Box 94, War Relief: YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of its Records, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapoli s. 78 ended, the YMCA helped to organize the United War Work Campaign in China and r aise funds to help with this reconstruction. One of the most spectacular events associated with this charitable relief for Europe was a fundraising parade organized in Tianjin. The above map shows the route of the parade, which traveled through all the maj or foreign concessions and skirted the edge of the old Chinese city center. 216 Sixty - three schools and organizations took part in the parade which included a total of 17,031 individuals. Many of the participants were from orphan schools or schools for the p oor. Nankai Middle School sent the most students with 1000 children represented and the Tianjin Police Half Day School who sent 3000 staff and students. The police, who were responsible for collecting donations, collected a total of $30,367.60 silver duri ng the parade activities. Less than one third of this amount came from the international concessions. The majority of the money was raised by Chinese residents. Collections were also made in all 118 districts, hsien , of Zhili Province totaling $121,813.53. Why would Tianjin residents be interested in rebuilding Europe? As Xu Guoqi suggests, part of the reason lay in a desire to help relieve those Chinese laborers working for the foreign powers. But it also reveals a gr owing awareness among Tianjin residents of their place within a Chinese national identity that tied local city residents to the fate of unknown internationalization was its im age as a promoter of peace through philanthropic 216 - Tientsin, January 20, 1919. Box 94, War Relief: YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of its Records, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minne sota, Minneapolis. For a comprehensive Strangers on the Western Front: Chinese Workers in the Great War (Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 2011). 79 leadership. Furthermore, it is not surprising that Tianjin residents would lead in donations to help Chinese working abroad as Tianjiners themselves came from all over the country. 80 In the Sympathetic Eye : International Relief in the North China Famine. Figure 1.4: Map Showing Affected Area with Centers of Distribution . 217 While the North China Famine of 1920 was by no means the most destructive twentieth cen tury , it drew unprecedented foreign relief aid that was championed by two U.S. presidents and mobilized overseas Chinese communities. This particular famine, brought on by drought, affected 30.3 million residents and caused roughly five hundred thousand de aths. 218 In Tianjin, foreigners and urban elite established the North China International Society of Famine 217 - Foreign Famine Relief Committee, 22 The Bund, Shanghai, Box 94, Famine Relief: Famine reports, 1921, YMCA International Wor k in China: An Inventory of its Records, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 218 Lillian M Li, Fighting Famine in North China: State, Market, and Environmental Decline, 1690s - 1990s (Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 2007 ), 284. 81 Relief. This organization helped to provide emergency relief for some five hundred thousand refugees. 219 This tragedy of human suffering brought China even more into the international community and the efficient and far reaching advocacy of international organizations like the YMCA brought China into greater public focus in the West. At the same time, these international networks helped to stimulate an d solidify national networks as well. 220 In response to the drought in North China, Dr. Tong Shaoyi met with William E. Souter and several friends to form the Chinese - Foreign Famine Relief Committee in Shanghai. Generosity from Shanghai would be reciprocat ed when the Japanese invaded the port during the Shanghai War of 1932 and Tianjin sent funds to help with postwar reconstruction. The mission of this Shanghai - based charity was to provide immediate food assistance and clothing to the famine stricken areas of North China. They planned to raise 1 million dollars in the course of a short time that they would then send to local famine relief committees in Zhili, Honan, Shantung, Shansi, and Shensi as well as Chekiang. A YMCA report on this organization explai ns that: In forming of plans for distribution, our policy is to distribute relief in the famine areas through Committees of the Protestant and Roman Catholic Missionaries in conjunction with the local gentry, and we further stipulate that relief should be given irrespective of religious or guild connections. 221 219 YMCA China Box, Famine Relief Folder, dated March 19, 1921. Box 94, Famine Relief: Famine reports, 1921, YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of its Records, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 220 e Foreign Famine Relief Committee Shanghai Co - operating with the North China International Work in China: An Inventory of its Records, Kautz Family YMCA Ar chives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 221 Ibid. 82 While urban charities might be more discerning about identifying who was worthy of charity, in the face of such widespread disaster, relief was distributed regardless of affiliation or creed. The generosity of Shanghai residents enabled the committee to quickly raise the required amount. They received most of their contributions in cash donations, this included 863,491.79 yuan and 182,908.68 Tls. (taels) . Donators also gave bonds, shares, scrolls, books and other valuables, so the committee not only had to raise money but also find ways to liquidate these assets. While most of the work involved with this charity raising activity was voluntary, the committee did incur some expenses including $2755.77 paid for advertising in native newspapers. They also paid to send telegrams to overseas Chinese communities, from which the Shanghai committee received a significant portion of their money, $134,266.28 and Tls. 159,229.35. They also gathered direct contri butions of food and clothing valued at $20,226.00. 222 By December 31 st of 1920, the Shanghai committee had raised a total of $1,013,126 and working with the Tianjin relief office had distributed almost all of it, with only $74,243.04 and Tls. 28,908.86 remai ning in their accounts for January. This operation during the harsh winter months when it hoped to continue to raise funding in the United States, especially to aid thos e starving and dying of exposure. According to this famine committee, it required $5.00 to keep one person from death over the three - month winter period. 222 Ibid., 4. 83 The report of the joint Foreign - Chinese Distribution Committee painted a dire picture. All information in our hands points to about twenty million people, who, if not actually famine - stricken, are in dire need of help, and close to 15 million who, without assistance in food and clothing will not survive this winter. Thousands of the famine suffe rers are now reduced to food made from the bark and leaves of trees, roots and grass together with the crushed remnants of any grain stalks, procurable, and all mixed up with mud and water; this is all that can be had in a few favored districts while in a great many other parts of the famine field no food of any kind can be obtained, and but for our supplies of grain and clothing the record of suffering and death would have been greater. We estimate that the contributions to the funds of our Shanghai Famine Relief committee has been the means of saving over one hundred thousand lives. 223 The $562,880.00 that was distributed in Tianjin, Baoding, Zhengding, Cangzhou, Hejian, Xiaochang, Hezheng, etc. was primarily through the International Society of Famine Rel ief, Tianjin. 224 Province No. of Hsiens Famine Sufferers Chihli 86 Hsiens of which 78 have sent reports 7,140,000 Honan 77 Hsiens of which 45 have sent reports 5,860,000 Shantung 32 Hsiens 3,800,000 Shensi 92 Hsiens of which 57 are reported as affected by drought, etc. 2,800,000 Shansi 68 Hsiens of which 36 have sent reports 450,000 Chekiang 22 Hsiens 1,070,000 Total 21,120,000 Table 1.1: International Society of Famine Relief, Tianjin. 225 223 - operating with the North China International International Work in China: An Inventory of Its Records, Kautz Family Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 224 Shanghai Co - operating with the North Chi Famine Relief, Famine Reports 1921, YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of Its Records, Kautz Family Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 225 Report of the Intelligence S - 84 Along with the North China International Society of Famine Relief, Tianjin utilized $460,266 for the purchase of grain. Distribution to Xiaochang also went through the Northern Urgent Relief Committee, Tianjin, organized by the London Mission, and the Procure de Lazariste for Zhengding. Individuals donated cash an d whatever valuables they possessed including clothing, silk, cotton, articles of jewelry, drawings, scrolls, deposit receipts, shares, foodstuff, etc. 226 Chambers of commerce organized by Chinese living abroad were crucial in raising international awareness of Chinese disasters. For example, the Chinese - Indonesian Chamber sent money to the Tianjin Chamber to help with poverty relief. 227 During the 1917 flood disaster, the Chinese Chamber of Commerce located in Osaka Japan sent donations to the Tianjin branch of the Chinese Red Cross. 228 And s tudent associations at colleges like Columbia University helped organize cultural fairs and dramatic presentations to raise awareness during times of trouble. Students also organized through native place associations in th e U.S.; o ne such group of students from Nangong County donated money for Tianjin famine relief during the early 1920s. 229 In the early twentieth century, the U.S. became increasingly active in supporting charity work in China. Since Tianjin was a treaty p ort and the economic center of Relief, Famine Reports 1921, YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of Its Records, Kautz Family Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 226 Ibid., 7. 227 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 002624 - 027, January 11, 1913. The Qing government, faced with bankruptcy, had placed significant emphasis on the building up of these associations in the years near ing its demise. Although it did not prevent the end of the Qing, the laws intended to protect overseas businessmen and encourage them to come back to the mainland and invest did prove to be somewhat fruitful. 228 TMA, J0128 - 2 - 002938 - 023, November 5, 1917. 229 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 008741 - 016, July 17, 1921. Letter to Zhang Yinqian, a Nangong County businessman, about student association in U.S. sending money for Tianjin relief from the Tianjin Chamber of Commerce. 85 Northern China at this time, many aid and relief agencies were active in the city. T he U.S. - China Disaster Relief Association ( ) working with the Tianjin Chamber of Commerce, began to relieve refugees in the fall of 19 16. This collaborative primarily focused on building schools and hospitals. 230 Japan ese international and locally organized philanthropic organizations, like the Red Cross, were active responder s to Chinese disasters. After the 1917 flood, the China - Japan Friendship Association contacted the chamber to discuss relief efforts. 231 The international attention stimulated by these efforts to relieve flood and drought victims in North China caught the attention of John R Freeman, a famous American civil engineer. Freeman was appointed a consultant for the Chinese government to improve the Grand Canal and prevent future flood disasters of the Yellow and Huai Rivers, at least partly through his connection with A. G. Robinson, one of the founding members of the Tianji n YMCA. 232 230 TMA, J 0128 - 3 - 004382 - 024, June 9, 1916. 231 TMA, J0128 - 2 - 002938 - 012, October 12, 1917. 232 and at a dinner given Mr. Freeman by their Excellencies, Chin Yun - P'e ng and Hsiung Hsi - Ling . . . at the Tientsin North China Star (English and Chinese: Peking, October 25, 1919): 67. 86 Figure 1.5: Freeman Plan for Preventing Flood and Famine. 233 Freeman worked with a Chinese industrial and philanthropic leader, Chang Chien. Although execution of this China - U.S. engineering project at flood prevention was eventually scrapped because of lack of funds, it demonstrates that international attention in assistance created valuable ties to foreign specialists. Scholarship regarding this perio d of Chinese history often emphasizes the importance of networks directly cultivated by the Nationalist government to implement its plans for modernization. But such informal 233 Asia: The American Magazine on the Orient 21, (January - December, January, 1921) : 79. 87 connections were equally transformative and often incorporated collaboration wit h local officials and specialists. Responding to the North China Famine also influenced the foreign countries that provided assistance. During a period of isolationism in the United States, with the Chinese Exclusion Act still in effect since the 1880 s and the Immigration Act of 1924 on the horizon that put even greater restrictions on Asian immigration, it is somewhat surprising the qualities of friendship expressed in a letter of proclamation from President Wilson: A famine, alarming in its proportions, to - day holds in its grip several important provinces in China. The crop failure is complete, and the present distress, which is great, is likely before winter has run its course, to become appalling. In fact, our dip lomatic and consular agencies in China inform me that the loss resulting from death in distressing form may run into millions of souls. It is certain that the local government and established agencies of relief are unable to cope with the magnitude of th e disaster which faces them. Under the circumstances, relief to be effective should be granted quickly. Once more an opportunity is offered to the American people to show that prompt and generous response with which they have invariably met the call o f their brother nations in distress. The case of China I regard as especially worthy of the earnest attention of our citizens. To an unusual degree the Chinese people look to us for counsel and for effective friendship. Our churches, through their relig ious and medical missionaries, their schools and colleges, and our philanthropic foundations have rendered China an incalculable benefit, which her people recognize with gratitude and devotion to the United States. Therefore, not only in the name of humani ty but in that of the friendliness which we feel for a great people in distress, I venture to ask that our citizens shall, even though the task of giving is not to - day a light one, respond as they can to this distant but appealing cry for help. In order to be assured of the orderly collection of such donations, large or small, as may be offered, I have invited a nation - wide committee, whose names are attached hereto, to lend their aid to this matter. I have designated Thomas W. Lamont, of New York City, to act as Treasurer. 88 I realize that this call, added to those for the underfed children of Eastern Europe and the afflicted peoples of the Near East, and to the needs of our own country, makes heavy the demand upon the bounty of the nation. I am confid ent, however, that all these pleas will be answered in generous spirit. 234 The information regarding the famine area was primarily provided by missionaries and some foreign traders. 235 In a January 5 th cable, Crane suggested that 40 million people were affe cted between rural and urban areas, with the worse situation in the countryside. Although the committee organized public meetings, its primary means of raising support was through American churches and their denomination associations. 236 Famine assistance in China had to compete with the Hoover campaign for relief for the distressed children of Europe. In order to ensure that relief was effectively distributed, an American China Committee was established with nearly half of the members representing various Ch ristian missionary groups. Included in this committee was Robert R. Gailey, from the Tianjin YMCA. The YMCA was further active in directing the National Campaign through Frederick B. Shipp who was then director of the Pittsburgh YMCA. On March 12 th 1921, for support for the China famine: renew the appeals heretofore made and to express the hope that the American people will continue to contribute to this humanitarian cause as generously as they possibly can. The cry for succor comes to us from a people far distant, but linked to us by manifold ties of friendly association, confidence and good will. The American nation has never f ailed to demonstrate its friendship for the people of China, and that friendship has always been reciproc ated in a manner which I feel justifies 234 Co., Printers, YMCA, 1921), 1 - 2. 235 (Trenton, NJ: MacCrellish & Quigley Co., Printers, YMCA, 1921). 236 89 at distress our people will do everything in their power for its ameli oration. 237 By the time the campaign concluded, $1,250,000.00 was set aside for future flood prevention research. An article also mentions that the campaign came to an end in response to the generous donations raised by local fundraising. Overseas, Chinese students played an important role in American fundraising activities as seen in the summary below. 238 Receipts by the American Committee up to August 15 th , 1921 aggregated, $46,668,420.33 To this should be added amount sent by the co - operating Chinese organizations in America (approximately), 250.000.00 Amount provided through the Red Cross, 1,112,000.00 Sent direct by Churches (approximately), 1,700,000.00 Approximate Grand Total $7,750,420.00 Table 1.2: American Fundraising Activities . 239 The China Famine Fund published a year - long series of advertisements to raise relief in important magazines on international politics and relations like Asia: The American Magazine on the Orient . Appeals were directed towards American generosity and aimed specifically at the vulnerability of Chinese children. T hese images emphasized the vulnerability of refugees by portraying the m as poor women and children as 237 The Pacific Unitarian 30, no. 4 (April 1921). 238 Famine Relief, China: An Inventory of Its Records, Kautz Family Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 239 acCrellish & Quigley Co., Printers, 1921), 8. 90 demonstrated by the first ad below. In the second image, peasants st rip the leaves from trees and eat bark : Figure 1.6: China Famine Fund Poster. 240 240 Asia: The American Magazine on the Orient 21, (January - December, April, 1921): 299. 91 Figure 1.7: Poster Issued by the Shantung Chinese Famine Relief Society. 241 241 Asia: The American Magazine on the Orient 21, (January - December 1921): 542. 92 CHAPTER 2: CONSOLIDATION AND THE NANJING DECADE, 1928 - 1937 . Figure 2.1: Food Distribution at Tianjin Refugee S helter . 1 By the Nanjing Decade , 1927 - 1937 , many of the modernizing transformations reshaping poverty relief and refugee management began to accelerate. Tianjin itself became an important model for how the policies of the central government were put into practice in Northern China. As a hub of international and trans - regional trade, the city became a useful showcase of Chinese modernization to the foreign world for the Jiang Jieshi regime when, in 1928, Tianjin was established as a municipality under the control of the Shanxi warlord Yan Xishan. 2 This event marked the beginning of the Nanjing 1 Tianjin jidujiao jiuji hui baogao shu [Report of the Tianjin Christian relief team], June 1933. 2 Yan Xishan was a minor but influential warlord active from the Xinhua Revolution until 1949, when he began working as a wor ld peace advocate. He often played an important role in regional warlord alliances and focused on developing modern technology and land reform in his area of influence. For more on his reform policies and role in the capture of Tianjin, see: Donald G. Gil lin, Warlord: Yen Hsi - shan in Shansi 93 Decade in the city. 3 As addressed in the previous chapter, many of the modernization plans Yuan Shi kai implemented in the 1910s and 20s had a significant influence on how relief work was conducted in the city. By establishing a large military presence in the created a substantial infrastructure active in promoting and organizing urban and regional relief work. The Nanjing government attempted to consolidate and expand poverty and refugee relief, and bring local policies into compliance with national standards and reg ulations. However, considering the corruption, fiscal irresponsibility, and ineffectiveness of many of the Nationalist policies, it is unsurprising that historians have often dismissed its Province, 1911 - 1949 (Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press, 1967). Also see a compilation of his early memoirs: Yan Xishan , Yan Xishan zao nian hui yi lu [The early memoirs of Yan Xishan] , (Taibeishi: Zhuanji wenxue chubanshe, 1968). For his later role advocating global harmony see: Yan Xishan, How to Prevent Warfare and Establish a Foundation of World Unity - A Proposal to the M.R.A. World Assembly (Taipei: Fu Hsing Press, 1952); Yan Xish an, A Draft Declaration of the International of Universal Harmony (Taipei: Fu Hsing Press, 1954); and Yan Xishan, Comments on the White Paper. A Speech Delivered to the Standing Committee of the Chinese Anti - Aggression League on August 10th, 1949 (Place of publication not identified: Chinese Anti - Aggression League, 1949). 3 The Nanjing Decade (Nanjing shinian ) refers to the period between 1927 and 1937, when the Guomindang, under the leadership of Jiang Jieshi, seized the southern capital in 1927 and the Beiyang government capitulated in 1928, ushering in a brief period of greater stability. The Nanjing Decade is important for its significant attempts at modernizing Chinese culture and society. In cities, this took the form of the New Life Movement, w "A˙ÿ2î /” ) by emphasizing Confucian morality alongside principles of Social Darwinism and Christianity. Soong May - Mayling Soong (Mme. Chiang Kai - shek), China Shall Rise Again work of propaganda, the work remains an important summary of the idealized aims and objectives of the ntative of much of the historiography on this period, presents a more critical perspective on the movement. He suggests it, especially the Blue Shirt Society, resembled cian The China Quarterly 150, (1997): 395 - 432. Also see: Wiliam C. Kirby, Germany and Republican China (Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 1984). In the countryside, the New Life Movement was paralleled by the Rural Reconstruction Movement . Although organized independently from Guomindang authority in the 1920s, it was supported by the GMD and effectively represents its rural policy throughout the 1930s and 40s as a means of strengthening China against Japanese invasion. Charles W. Hayford describes this movement as an attractive liberal alternative to the radical land reform policies and collectivization of the Great Leap Forward, see: Charles Wishart Hayford, To the People: James Yen and Village China (New York: Columbia University Press, 1990). 94 attempts at social reform as either stilted or outright detriment al. 4 Yet it was the very ineffectiveness of the central state apparatus that stimulated the growth of local government and civil society. In this chapter, I will argue that civil society in the Nanjing Decade relied on a plurality of actors to address so cietal problems that could not be solved by working alone. While the Nationalist government may have established a like Tianjin required local state institutions to not only rely on other actors like independent charities, but also to incorporate their leadership into its own. What continued to inspire local gentry to support government relief programs and refugees to come to the city looking for aid? How did municip al leaders understand their of the localization of Nationalist social policies, this chapter aims to argue that Nanjing 4 The majority of Chinese histories represent the Nanjing Decade as a period of increased state intervention poverty was criminalized under N anjing social policy which focused on eradicating the dependence of the poor on government aid through labor programs. Zwia Lipkin illuminates the role of Social Darwinism on Guomindang policy - making to clear the streets of undesirable poor; and Di Xudan, like many Chinese historians, largely frames Nanjing Decade social welfare polices as foreign and backward, comparing it to the 1795 British Poor Laws, see: Chen, Guilty of Indigence ; Lipkin, Useless to the State . Di Xudan , Jindai Shanghai shehui fuli zhidu yanjiu, 1927 - 1937 [A Study on the Modern Shanghai Social Welfare System (1927 - 1937)] (PhD diss., Huadong zhengfa daxue, falushi, 2013) . While GMD programs of consolidation and fiscal appropriation were often antagonistic to members of t he underclass and China under GMD leadership was no model republic, the decade also represents a period of of legal protections that contributed to an environment which stimulated greater creativity in addressing the needs of the poor and displaced. Frank Dikotter discusses the Nanjing Decade positively as a period of openness in his work: Frank Dik tter, The Age of Openness: China before Mao . (Berke ley: University of to the question of social change and Chinese philanthropy, see: Bi Mu Minguo shiqi Shandong chengshi xiaceng shehui bianqian yan jiu [The Study of Urban Shandong daxue, Zhongguo Jinxiandaishi, 2012). In this chapter, I provide an alternative to the story of state repression and crimin alization of poverty by examining how the open nature of the Nanjing Decade fostered diverse responses to problems of urban poverty and displacement. 95 Decade welfare policy deserves greater attent ion as a significant development of civil society in China. The division of the chapter is organized to balance municipal government sources with several major newspapers and popular magazines to analyze the effect of national prerogatives on motivating l ocal social responsibility and national unity. The chapter relies on a careful analysis of the Tianjin Municipal Gazette (1927 - 1937), a little utilized source housed in the archives of the Nankai Library Special Collections that was internally published t hroughout the Nanjing Decade. 5 The chapter also uses articles from the elitist pictorial, the Beiyang Huabao , as well as from popular newspapers like the Dagongbao ( ) and Yishibao ( ˘Õ ) to explore how urban elite connected a sense of social responsibil ity to noblesse culture and entertainment. Nanjing Perspectives on Welfare in Government Memoranda . Under the leadership of administrators from the Nanjing government, Nationalist ideology effectively inspired local municipal and civic creativity in Tia njin. After taking control of Nanjing in 1927, the Nationalist Party began to strongly emphasize a program of modernization through cultural citizenship that since the 1920s emphasized military discipline and exercise. 6 Martial discipline extended to the ordinary lives of students who were required to perform in military ceremony and expressions of patriotic fever. The government officials appointed by the central government in Nanjing transmitted these values into the institutions to which they were appo inted. Consolidation and efficiency 5 The Tianjin Municipal Gazette (here after SZGB) was circulated among local leaders and published the activities of the municipal government including laws and regulations, tax policies, etc. 6 Fabio Lanza discusses the growing emphasis on nationalism through physical and mental self - discipline and how Beijing students resisted this emphasis in his w ork: Fabio Lanza, Behind the Gate: Inventing Students in Beijing (New York: Columbia University Press, 2010), 57 - 61. 96 found much greater emphasis than the institutional autonomy that largely characterized the 1910s and 20s. 7 For example, through the leadership of the Bureau of Social Affairs (also Social Bureau or BSA) and the General Labor Union (established August 1928), the Tianjin Municipal Government promoted worker safety, wage stability, and job security while undermining class struggle. 8 Hershatter has rightfully argued that the economic pressures of the 1930s meant these refor ms met with marginal success until all unions were disbanded in 1938 by the Japanese occupation force. 9 However, Nationalist cultural reforms deserve greater analysis especially within the context of the social welfare activities of the Social Bureau, whi ch was very active in consolidating charity activity in Tianjin during this period and more successful than some of the broader social reforms pushed by the Nanjing government. With Yan Xishan acting as the president of the transitional government, and Na n Government on June 25, 1928. 10 One of the first priorities of new city government was to reorganize how poverty relief functioned in the city. For example, consolidati on of the Tianjin homeless shelters began in 1929 with stricter regulations passed in August of the same year. These regulations required all new charities to register with the local city government and obtain prior approval before establishing operations in the city. 11 On the 7 For more on the nationalist program for training government officials, see: Robert Joseph Culp, Articulating Citizenship: Civic Education and Student Politics in Southeastern China, 1912 - 1940 (Cambridge, MA: Published by the Harvard University Asia Center, 2007). 8 Hershatter, Workers of Tianjin , 221 - 227. 9 Ibid., 227 - 229. 10 SZGB 1, (August, 1928): Front Matter. 11 SZGB 13, Section 3 (August 1929): 47 - 49. 97 positive side, the BSA implemented these measures in an attempt to reduce corruption and to ensure that donations were distributed in a way that reflected shifting ethics of labor, poverty, and criminality. At the same time, it was clearly an attempt by the new government to seize responsibility for an important social service that could help to legitimize its new tenure to the citizens of northern cities while providing an important platform for state ideology. 12 By requiring registr ation, the municipal government sought to track active relief organizations and to control how those organizations obtained funding. 13 One of my main arguments in this chapter is that municipal government officials were keenly aware of the political legiti macy that could be won through effective management of disaster and poverty relief, but that this legitimacy was continuously contested by other civil forces which also desired that legitimacy. 14 12 society because attempts to meet the philanthropic needs of its citizens provided vital credibility to the regime. Ca re and control were two critical components of governance during this period, see: Alfred H. Y. - Modern China 30, no. 2 (April 2004): 151 - 198. 13 Wang Hongg and resisting the Japanese, see: Wang Hongge )»4Ò˚l zhengce yanjiu .D0¦ [The Study on Grain Control Policy of the National Government in the Anti - 2013). 14 A command made by the Republican Qingdao Municipal Government directly connects providing for the relief of unemployed workers with shi zhi wei hui han wei shiye gongyou shenghuo kunnan zhu she lao dong zhiye jieshao suo yang ji zhuyi jiuji you [Social Affairs Bureau Order: A lette Qingdao tebieshi zhengfu shizheng gongbao [The Qingdao Special Municipal Gazetteer] 4, (1929): 127 - 128. 98 Figure 2.2: General Yan Xishan ( L eft) and Tianjin Mayor Nan (Right) . 15 To many Christian missionaries, these attempts at consolidation were particularly alarming. 16 The expatriate community genuinely feared that the Nationalist government would simply expropriate control over their investments and find a way t o ignore extraterritorial privileges. Frank Rawlinson, editor of the Chinese Recorder , put this , 8250 Protestant missionaries in China at the beginning of 1927, by June only about 3000 remained. 17 The threat was also compelling for locally maintained charities that had no international connections to leverage. From the records of the BSA, there does seem to be a greater focus on increasing efficiency, expanding the reach of urban philanthropic 15 SZGB 1, (August, 1928): Front Matter. 16 Education was another area which the nationalist government a ttempted to force its ideology, however some American missionary schools refused to comply with policies claiming protection under American Chinese Scho Papers Relating to the Foreign Relations of the United States 1928 II, U.S. Government Printing Office, (1928): 570 - 573. 17 A. Henrietta Gregg, China and Educational Autonomy: The Changing Role of the Protestant Educational Missionary in China, 1807 - 1937 ( Syracuse, NY: Syracuse University Press, 1946), 156. 99 activities, and at least in the language of the correspondences between the various organs of the municipal government (BSA, Office of the Mayor, Office of the Chief of Police, and refugee populations. 18 The new laws regulating charities sought to test the effectiveness of the various private and government owned charities in the city and publish rankings to encourage donations to the most productive programs. By requiring both government and privately owned charities to publish their monthly budgets to the finance and social bureaus, the urban leadership encouraged institutional efficiency and acquired a better comprehension of the actual extent of regional poverty. Examinati to 1937 reveals a four - fold pattern for increased control. 19 First, the BSA would force all charities actively soliciting donations to report their income and expenses to the government an d publish their findings in local newspapers to encourage greater transparency. As demonstrated by the rapid success and failure of the Save the Nation Association ( ) discussed in the previous chapter, newspapers were an important 18 Although there is a clear overlap between imprisonment and poverty relief in Tianjin as in other Chinese cities during this period, the focus of t he many correspondences concerning philanthropy coming from the Tianjin Social Bureau ( ), primarily regard meeting basic emergency needs as an overwhelming priority. Again, the scale of need helped to mitigate some of the more invasive social planni ng programs that came out of the New Life Movement and were more rigorously enforced in places like Nanjing and Changsha, see: The Journal of Asian Studies 34, no. 3 (1975): 689 715. 19 Some of the earliest edicts regarding charity consolidation appears in the Yishibao from February to March, 1929 as published orders from the Tianjin Municipal Government to the Social Bureau and all charities operating within the city. Each city distri ct was commanded to establish or designate an official female shelter, training shelter, orphanage, and burial charity. Independent charities were now to be under the directorship of the jiujiyuan administration and collectively managed. This was a respon se to a directive from the Nanjing Central Committee on Social Welfare. While this directive and ones that followed may have caused confusion and concern among private charities, it was never effectively enforced, and private charities continued to take t displaced. The weakness of the Guomindang Party meant that charity work remained an important context the party line. 100 means of swaying publi c opinion among the Tianjin population regardless of class affiliation. Newspaper s also offered some measure of protection against strong - arming politicians who sought to appropriate funds for their own projects. Disgruntled public servants sometimes open various Tianjin news outlets. Detailed continuous reports on the amount of donations received and the expenses of major charities was easily accessible to any prospective donators. 20 Transp arency is commonly recognized as a fundamental ethical principle regarding policymaking in social work. It encourages policymakers to craft decisions openly, honestly, and in good faith. 21 As Tianjin Municipal Government charities and private charities publ ished their data alongside each other, it encouraged a spirit of never be adequately met. Secondly, the Tianjin Municipal Government required charities to obtain a pproval before soliciting donations. A common means for these charities to raise financial support came through circulating advertisements in newspapers for charity social events such as dances or art exhibitions. 22 However, by the Nanjing Decade, a wearin ess among to receive tax benefits, but then continuously put off fulfilling thei r promises. This meant 20 Reports to the city finance bureau and social bureau, included copies of receipts for all donations and explanations of how money was used. Donations were also published in newspapers. Charities that refused or delayed publishing their finances were chastised by journalists and audited by government accountants. 21 Allan Edward Barsky, Ethics and Values in Social Work: An Integrated Approach for a Comprehensive Curriculum (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2010). 22 The Beiyang Huabao #;+k˘Õ (here after BYHB) carries many excellent examples of this. 101 that competition for charitable resources was even greater than during the period before. Although I found only a few examples of private charities being censored among the files of the BSA and Tianjin police, this regulation also f unctioned as an important tracking mechanism for the local government. Certain charity galas were prioritized to meet the needs perceived as most critical to the state while others were displaced . Moreover, during periods of disaster, the municipal governm ent was well aware of which charities had cash on hand that could be expediently appropriated to meet urgent needs. Third, carefully regulating the fund raising activities of Tianjin charities encouraged public displays of giving and helped to legitimize the conspicuous consumption of the Tianjin elite within the context of philanthropic relief. As discussed in the previous chapter, by the end of the Qing Dynasty, philanthropy was almost always a public activity, and thus one that could be more heavily reg ulated and encouraged through public recognition. Since the late Ming, Chinese elite had gradually moved away , yinde , i n order to offset their obvious wealth inequality and compete for moral authority. 23 The municipal govern ment could not only control what organizations could advertise their work, but because of their hunger for public recognition, pressure elites to fund particular charities. c osmopolitans took place exclusively between government - approved contenders. 24 For all its financial corruption and general ineffectiveness, the Nanjing government was remarkably successful at implementing a plan of welfare regulation that both encouraged 23 Smith, The Art of Doing Good , 5, 276. 24 SZGB 13, Sections 6 - 8 (August 1929): 47 - 49. 102 c ontinued public support while consolidating ideology and shaping values. The Nanjing government clearly prioritized welfare and disaster relief as essential components of city governance and control. While Nationalist government welfare programs ultimately failed, their thinking could be often remarkably forward and remain a valuable source of inspiration for meeting the demands of social welfare in China today. 25 Declaring the Rights of Men, Women, and Children . If labor and industrial productivity were b ecoming the established hallmarks of a new ethics of poverty relief management and a means to identifying the deserving poor, it is helpful to place these values within the context of simultaneously emerging standards for the fair treatment of labor. As I will demonstrate later in this chapter, the correspondences of government agents are far less condescending to impoverished unemployed workers than one might expect. 26 Examining the protections provided to urban factory workers both displays a developing le gal system designed to guard against exploitation , and reveals the nature of human rights values taking root in the city. These emerging attitudes shaped the demands and expectations popular society would place on institutions organized to relieve poverty. 27 For example, it was no longer enough for 25 Institute ( ), see: Ge Baosen - 1937 .D0¦ [Research of Tianjin Relief Institute 1929 - xue, Zhongguo jin xiandai shi, 2008). 26 them However, outside the specifically criminal poor (a term whose definition was expanding), appeals to help refugees and disaster victims remained sympathetic, see: Chen, Guilty of Indigence, 84 - 85. 27 What I am trying to argue here is important because it suggests that new forms of labor and production not only create new forms of exploitation, but also new assertions regarding the value of individual life. 103 widows to be fed and cloistered away from the temptations of unmarried life in Buddhist nunneries. 28 realized. 29 merit as the producers of future labor. 30 The very identity of motherhood encouraged certain rights and expectations that may have never have been legally defined otherwise. 31 The Nanjing Central Government sought to improve labor laws to comply will discuss how many of these regulations were inspired by the small but influential model v illages organized by the China YMCA. The BSA began more closely monitoring factories employing a medium to large work force collecting information regarding working conditions with careful record keeping of worker injuries, illnesses, their treatment and outcome. This close monitoring clearly connected with the desire to 28 Ma Buying Pœ!Ł9! [Overview of the Tianjin Nankai Shuangzhou [Nankai Biweekly] 4, no. 5 (1929): 21 - 23, G639.282.1 (MGQK). 29 Although there was a clear gap between the new labor regulations protecting women who were pregnant or had just given birth and how female workers were actually treated by employers, regulations referring to these issues pepper many of the documents listing worker rights and protections from this period. For SZGB 17, (December 1929): 1. 30 - Political Science Quarterly 50, no. 4 (December 1935): 570. 31 Monthl y Labor Review and the Far Eastern Fortnightly , on the other hand stimu Monthly Labor Review 13, no. 2 (August 1921): 22. While protection of female labor throughout the Nanjing Decade r emained deplorable, news articles decrying these conditions remained equally consistent and demonstrate an awaking of public consciousness Shenbao , North China Herald, Xin Qingnian, etc. during this period. 104 prevent the spread of sickness and epidemics as Ruth Rogaski has demonstrated in her study of health and hygiene, weisheng . As a consequence, sanitary and safe working conditions became b asic expectations in all labor contexts, even if these expectations were poorly met. The Tianjin Social Bureau began to record factory accidents, require detailed explanations of how these disasters were relieved, and what changes would be implemented to prevent further problems. 32 The BSA also published a list of fines that companies would be liable to pay if they were found to have violations. By publishing these fines in public media sources like the Dagongbao , the municipal government encouraged educat ed workers to know their rights and report on abuses. In one occurrence , a fire that injured several workers in a Tianjin factory, inspired numerous articles reflecting on worker safety and newspapers also organized a fund drive to support the families of the injured workers. 33 Along with this move towards greater accountability to protect the lives and health of workers, the central government issued new laws restricting the employment of children. Since the introduction of the factory system, child labo r was utilized as a means sometimes worked 18 hour shifts or longer for only room and board. In fact, these s for securing permanent employment and really amounted to a form of slave labor. The Tianjin Municipal 32 SZGB 17 (December 1929): 1. 33 sheng: (1) Tianjin xiangji bingtang gongchang huozai (shi yue ershiyi ri yishibao) ( ): : ( ) "ã : (1) ( ) [Domestic Labor News (October): 13, Industrial Disasters: (First) Hebei Province: (1) Tianjin Xiangji Sugar Factory Fire (October 21 YSB Guoji laogong tongxun [International Labor Bulletin] 1935, 14:68, K261.3 (MGQK). 105 Government responded to this problem by publicizing laws against child labor authored by the Nanjing Department of Labor. All children under the age of 14 were forbidden to work in factories and children between 14 to 16 years were to be assigned only light duty work. 34 Laws were also specifically designed to protect women and girls from potentially dangerous work, forbidding them to deal with explosives or poisonous materials. Work around chemical dust and heavy machinery, jobs related to high voltage electricity, disposing of chemical wastes or any other potentially dangerous or harmful jobs were also limited to adult men. 35 The central government also p assed laws restricting working hours, especially for women and children. 36 The regulations set the normal work day to last 8 hours or up to a maximum of 10 hours. Even in times of disaster, all workers were limited to no more than 12 hours per day and no more than 36 extra hours per month. The central government placed specia l restrictions regarding the working hours of children and women: children between the ages of 14 to16 should not work more than 8 hours per week, should not work between 7 p.m. to 6 a.m. and women should not work after 10 p.m. or before 6 a.m. The centr al government also published regulations for rest to ensure all workers had one day rest in seven , and a half hour rest for every five hours of work. Paid vacations were also required by the Nanjing government as well as paid leave during government holid ays. Why does it matter that 34 SZGB 17, (December 1929): 1. 35 SZGB 17, (December 1929): 1. 36 While the intent of passing labor laws such as these was to improve class relations in cities, the results were not always the case. Besides the expected resistance of business owners to comply with regulations, working families often relied on the supplemental income of children. In fact, one of the major issues which encouraged worker participation in the May Thirtieth Movement in 1925 was a series of proposed child labor laws. 106 such regulations were implemented by the central government and then by city administrators? The answer lies, at least partly, in how labor laws reflect a shifting landscape of values. A fundamental principle of the modern p eriod was that popular expectations for government protection were both expanding and becoming increasingly complex. By enacting a clear structure of factory regulation, the Nanjing government was also declaring its superior moral position to define the l imits of propriety and its role as the supreme arbiter of economic inequality. 37 Within this context, the effectiveness of state directed institutions for poverty relief represent a profoundly important source for the legitimacy to rule. Although clearly established by the beginning of the Xinhai Revolution, the transition from patriarchal punisher to popular protector represented a critical ideological shift in how the relationship between the governing and governed took - dynast ic world. Ideally, the Nanjing government sought to meet needs which reflected demands beyond ensuring subsistence. local area where the 38 Reflecting the instability of Chinese currency at the time, the 37 I use the term propriety here in the sense that the National ist government was essentially legitimizing traditionally superior place of men in Chinese society continued to affect the kinds of labor available to women, the drive towards material self - sufficiency meant that certain values were incompatible with a modernizing China. 38 Although these regulations were not actually followed and only represented a small percentage of the total industry in Tianjin, they are important for three reasons. First, publicizing these regulations, heightened awareness and increased public sympathy for poor working conditions. Second, it allowed educated workers to adopt a legal language when protesting against exploitation and poor working conditions. Third, it provides a useful basis for understanding what influences were shaping public policies SZGB 17, December 1929, 1. 107 regulations argued payments to workers must be made in the local currency and that provis ions regarding equal are doing the same kind of job and have the same work efficiency they should be paid the 39 Women were also guaranteed eight weeks of paid leave for pregnancy. This is 1963. The list of central government labor laws also emphasized paternalistic values like encouraging workers to open savings accounts, making time for recreation, and ensuring safety and proper hygiene. The regulations also laid down instructions for a factory congress which was democratically organized to resolve labor conflicts, increase efficiency, and improve safety. Although it could be r ightly argued that such regulations were poorly enforced and largely on paper only, they do reveal an attempt on the part of some government administrators to provide better living conditions for all citizens. Rather than make an argument about the govern public policies help to reveal the ideals and rights language that was becoming increasingly what Chinese society expected from its government. As will be discussed later within this chapter, e ven groups of beggar s learned to utilize this kind of rights Raising Funds and the Benefits of Giving . If the city government was motivated to provide for social welfare as a response to changing expectations regarding the relationship between state and society, what 39 SZGB 17, (December 1929): 2. 1 08 motivated individual response? Did charitable work expand social currency in a way that can be correlated to motivation? I am using social currency here in relation to Pierre Bourdi , I hope to be better equippe d to answer three questions: How did giving shape personal identity. H ow did the activities of giving create or expand certain social networks and form community? What was the value of the public recognition giving afforded to social status? As discussed in the previous chapter, p ublic recognition of charitable giving did not always translate into social currency or even legitimate public virtue. However, the collapse of the Qing Dynasty and the unprecedented intensity and persistence of ensuing natural and man - made disasters meant that traditional networks of m utual extended family support were completely insufficient to meet the rapid increase in refugees brought on by famine and war. Appealing to the generosity of the elite, both private and public run charities sought to stimulate giving by creating competiti on among potential givers. In 1929, the Tianjin city government asked the interior ministry to create a template for a tiered system of awards given to major contributors. The rules for these awards were meticulously discussed and substantial efforts we re made to guarantee that regulations were universally applied throughout Nationalist controlled areas. Such careful attention and tiered levels of competition demonstrate that public identifiers of generosity clearly translated into feelings of self - wort h and social standing. In addition, public competition for giving was not restricted to elite philanthropists. Several records disclose that charity organizers recognized the effectiveness of offering public 109 recognition to contributors and pushed to crea te lower level awards to permit wider participation. 40 Similarly, award systems were used to identify philanthropic organizations that were particularly effective or embodied the principles of Nationalist relief policies. 41 In a climate of growing unrest o ver the extremes of wealth inequality, charity work was seen as an important form of social responsibility that provided legitimacy for wealth. Journalists and letters to the editor began bringing acute attention to the growing economic divide among urba n citizens. A typical criticism of a charity drama waiting to be fed. Yet those officers and social elites eat meat and dress in expensive clothes and still live li 42 The concept of the wealth poverty gap being unfair , bu gongpin , was a relatively new concept, and clearly not everyone was convinced that the lavish charity balls of the Tianjin elite were really sufficient for achieving the level of social responsibility required. 43 Within the public discourse, a significant association between the suffering of the poor and the suffering of doing charity work becomes apparent. It was not enough for the 40 Although it would be somewhat presumptuous to argue that elite conceptions of how philanthropic giving translated in to social currency was imitated by middle class values, it does suggest some kind of significant link existed. 41 SZGB 12, (July, 1929): 202. July 31, 1929. 42 BYHB, March 26, 1929, 43 bu gongping ( ), a phrase that was not really in popular use to describe the w ealth poverty gap until around the 1930s. Although my research on this term is only preliminary, a search using the Minguo shi qi qi kan quan wen shu ju ku, 1911 - 1949 and the digitized Shenbao seems to support this conclusion. 110 rich to give; they also had to suffer. The article goes on to positively describe a charity benefit organized by the chief editor of the Dagongbao . What made his effort and the event legitimate was the great personal sacrifice of time and energy expended to arrange the activity. This seemed to even take precedence over the amount of money raised or its general effectiveness. The journalist also describes the primary actress for this charity performance, Mrs. Tang Baochao ( ) 44 He describes her pitiful state, spotting more than ten bottles of Chinese medicine in her handbag. It is as though the journalist were saying: Yes, there are evil greedy elite who care nothing for the needs of the poor, but look at this ri ch philanthropist, see how hard she works, to the point of sacrificing her health and life for the poor. Although it may seem ludicrous to compare the suffering of starving peasant flood refugees with the temporary exertions of an elite actress, this mann er of paralleled narratives of suffering revealed that expressions of suffering themselves were an important way that elite Chinese communicated with each other, and that identifying with the downtrodden could provide social currency and legitimacy. 45 44 Although this was also a te rm commonly applied to prostitutes. 45 philanthropy where contributions are targeted to meet both business objects and recipient needs. The value of this kind of marketing oriented philanthro py is well recognized in the business world today, see: Jerry D. Social Work 43, no. 1 (January 1998): 34 - 41. In a similar way, elites participated in fundraising activities that made them specifically identifiable as philanthropists in a way that strengthened social networks and improved relations with the media and general public. Placing individual philanthropic giving within the context of strategic philanthropy is useful because i t also helps to demythologize the act of individual giving. As Bruce Sievers these is defined by instrumental objectives such as financial stabili ty [or] number of people served. The other world, however, is defined by different end goals of human action: education, artistic expression, freedom of thought and action, concern for future generations, and preservation of cultural and environmental lega cies .... These ends are the goals and aspirations of the human experience and are not reducible to the same kinds of categories that define profit margins and make for the most efficient production of widgets. It is this mission - driven dimension that sepa rates the world of the nonprofit from the world of the for - profit in a fundamental way. "Mission" is even too limited a word to capture all that is 111 Figure 2.3: Charity Performance Sponsored by the Dagongbao . 46 Famous artists also participated in charity events in a way that drew particular attention to their sacrifice. Calligraphers and painters often worked with benefactors to produce works specifically to raise money for social relief. For example, in the su mmer of 1929, Yang Lingfu came to Tianjin and worked for fifty - two days on a series of paintings and Buddhist texts which were sold at the Pantongzi ( ) Club in Tianjin raising over 1000 yuan for flood victims in the entailed in the nature of the nonprofit enterprise; it suggests a single - mindedness of goal that belies the multi - dimensional character of any activity aimed at ameliorating the human condition. "Purpose" or "aspiration" might better describe the goals of organizations that operate in the social sphere. Within their broad purposes, organizations certainly adopt specific tasks, but the point of the overall effort lies beyond these instrumental vehicles.... [I]t is poetry rather than metrics that often best captures this dimension of Pr oceedings of the American Philosophical Society 149, no. 2 (June 2005): 134. But if we think of private philanthropy within the context of social networking and building a personal brand, the realms of philanthropy and business become somewhat less mutual ly exclusive. 46 BYHB , March 26, 1929. 112 Northwest. 47 Along with specific chari table performances, the charity funfair was immensely popular in Tianjin during the Nanjing Decade. Funfairs combined various forms of entertainment and celebrity shows that included both traditional art forms and ut very quickly, people were enthusiastic about it. I heard that the most expensive ticket was printed on purple leather with golden words on it and sold for 100 daiyang , - packed funfair hosted by the Qunyi Club . 48 - Liang, now the C hairwoman of the West Mukden Floods Relief Association . 49 47 < > [Yang Lingfu sells her paintings BYHB , July 25, 1929. Yang Lingfu studied at the Peking Museum and was commissioned by the imperial court . In the 1930s she lived in Germany where she gave art lessons to Adolf Hitler. She came to California in 1938 where she designed stage settings for The Good Earth and taught painting at Stanford University; she died September 4, 1978. 48 Ibid. 113 - Tung appearing in a local theater for the - chang, the first best - dressed lady in the Liaoning Flood Relief Fashion Ball . 50 Charity clearly could lend moral credence to displays of opulent extravagance. 51 Leading government figures also sought to capitalize on the legitima cy that charity work ), played 49 BYHB , September 20, 1930. 50 Actress Meng Hsiao - BYHB, November - chang, the first best - BYHB, December 9, 1930. 51 /nCx&®$h8ª BYHB , August 20, 1929. 114 an active role in organizing public charity venues and relief efforts. 52 After a major flood in western Liaoning Province that inundated ten counties, Mr 53 Besides donating her own money for the disaster relief, she established her own disaster relief organization, which organized a calligraphy and painting exhibition, funfair, and volunteer drama. Zhang Xueliang was hims elf an avid collector of ancient calligraphy and painting from the Song and Yuan dynasties and many of the pieces were wife reflected Confucian values of paternal ben evolence within a more modern trend of first lady service. The activities of high profile benefactors often sparked greater awareness and led to further charitable work and donations. After the work by Mrs. Yu, several charity operas were held raising mo re than three thousand yuan. As Joshua Goldstein has pointed out, by the 1930s , Beijing Opera was being remolded into a commodity that placed growing value on a few star actors. This left many struggling actors and their families behind, and at least some of the charity performances were specifically directed at alleviating their pli ght. In Tianjin, actors formed the National Drama Union in 1937 to support poor actors. The proceeds from performances were evenly distributed among members and the troop regularly performed charity events to help impoverished comrades. 54 Dr. Mei Lanfang ( ) , the most famous male actor 52 Although there are many articles about Yu Fengzhi in Chinese, few focus her philanthropic work. Most are concerned with her divorce and her experiences as the wife of Zhang Xueliang. For a recent biography see: Wei Liansheng , Yu Fengzhi: Zhang Xueliang jiang jun fu ren : [Yu Fengzhi: The wife of Zhang Xueliang] (Beijing: Hua wen chu ban she, 2005). 53 en chou zhen liaoxi shuizai < BYHB , September 20, 1930. 54 Joshua Goldstein, Drama Kings: Players and Publics in th e Re - creation of Peking Opera, 1870 - 1937 (Berkeley: University of California Press, 2007), 206. 115 playing female roles at the time, provided a charity performance a few weeks after 55 Figure 2.6: Mei Lanfang P repares for a C harity P erformance. 56 55 [Dr. Mei Lanfang came to Tianjin volunteer to perform Yi opera for the disaster relief in BYHB < > [A two night volunteer opera show for winter relief and flood relief in Liaoning BYHB zhuang wuhui shiling [What I BYHB , December 9, 1930. As a national celebrity, Mei Lanfang was under significant pressure to preform acts of charity especially through benefit performanc es ( yiwu xi ). As Joshua Goldstein has pointed out, the pressure to hold charity events to support philanthropic institutions was so great that at times local education bureaus had to that itemized accounts be Drama Kings , 204. For a useful collection of documents on Mei Lanfang, see: Tian Min, China's Greatest Operatic Male Actor of Female Roles: Documenting the Life and Art of Mei Lanfang, 1894 - 1961 , (Lewiston, NY: Edwin Mellen Press, 2010). 56 [zhaopian] : : :[ 'Š(w ] [Li Photo Mei Lanfang prepares for a Li shifang zhuanji. April, 1942. Microfilm number: J - 3426 Frame: 0584. 116 A Decade of Bureaucratization . The Nanjing Decade also brought with it new sources of income for government relief agencies. Besides the continued direct contributions of individual gentry and special taxes on luxuries and entertainment, public transportation became another important, taxable sour ce of income during this period as demonstrated by the Beining Railroad Operations Bureau which provided donations to support relief for refugees. 57 As the bureaucracy expanded, it too became a potential source of emergency revenues. Additionally, in March 1929 , the central government instructed that all civil servants winter relief. 58 The Tianjin Municipal Government also utilized the provision of public utilities to foreign concessions in intricate schemes of funding social welfare projects. After the initial success of a free clinic established in the third district of Tianjin city, t he local government needed a way to raise funds to expand its medical services and insure its continued funding and operation. To do this, they opened a public bid to contract a private company to provide sewage disposal services to the international conce ssion. However, the successful bidder was not the company that offered the city the lowest price for its services, but rather the company that could guarantee the highest rate of return for the contract. The burden of negotiating with the foreign concessi ons was placed on these 57 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000257 - 001, August 1937. 58 YSB , March 19, 1929, donate is a term loosely used here since the donations were automatically deducted from the monthly pay of workers. 117 devised this strategy because its location in the busy overcrowded port district , threatened to increase the spread of contagious disease. 59 Although attempts to force private charities to integrate into the government managed Jiujiyuan system met with resistance and only marginal success, other precedents established during this period stimulated the growth of transparency and public accountability, in creasing the effectiveness and value of print media. For example, reviewing a recently established homeless shelter, a journalist at the YSB charged the Benfu shelter with hiding its assets. In compliance with Nanjing policies of publishing the regulation s and finances of charities publicly, the shelter had contacted the newspaper and provided its mission statement when it was first opened in November 1928. Following up, the newspaper reported that the charity had failed to provide information about its fi nancing and that the operating budget was kept in a private account of one of the board members, surname Zhang, in a Shanxi bank. The article reveals that the expectations for transparency were in fact quite high. The reporter not only demanded that the s helter disclose its accounts, but also detail how much interest had been earned on the principle of the operating budget of 30 or 40 thousand yuan. 60 The Language of Suffering . d most likely does not capture the realities and diversity of lived experience. Yet what is more interesting is what that language says about the values defining human dignity among the literate during the early twentieth century. As public discourse expa nded 59 YSB , March 28, 1929. 60 YSB , February 20, 1929. 118 exponentially through print journalism and radio broadcasts in big cities by the 1930s, the creation and expansion of national identity. As Rana Mitter has argued , although China had existed as a country for millennia, it was the particular challenges of the twentieth century that galvanized it into becoming a nation - state. 61 Whereas Mitter places his emphasis on the cataclysm of the Japanese occupation of Manchuri a, I suggest that the continual relief of poverty, within the context of a growing public discourse, provides a parallel narrative of national awakening of equal importance. Although, nationalism inspired by resisting Japanese occupation led to the growth of authoritarian control, this parallel narrative often proved a much more fertile territory for cultivating civic participation, public discussion, and collective responsibility. Throughout the Nanjing Decade, Tianjin was the focal point of transnationa l response to Chinese poverty. Common descriptions of suffering for both poor residents of Tianjin and migrant refugees from throughout North China encouraged a myth of national identity that emanated from a collective social responsibility. By tracing descriptions of the suffering caused by poverty, it becomes possible to conceptualize some of the values defining human dignity and social progress and how those values changed. Disregarding these values by merely focusing on the institutional effectivene ss of various aid programs may obscure the forces shaping public morality. 62 61 resistance became the catalyst for creating a truly universal public notion of Chinese national identity that could be influenced and contested by the Communist and Nationalist parties, see: Rana Mitter, Forgotten - 1945 , (Boston: Houghton Mifflin Harcourt, 2013): 41. 62 I have noticed in several works that focus on philanthropy in twentieth century China, some historians programs rather than the motivations which defined them to the public. While this approach can help to 119 Like in previous periods, city government communications continued to call attention to the physical vulnerability of refugees and the unemployed poor. Descriptions repeatedly po rtrayed needy individuals as scantily clad, starving, with faces covered in tears. This type of appeal clearly sought to stimulate emotional resonance. 63 Protection of the poor went beyond merely a disconnected responsibility of the new government seeking public poor , charity during this period. 64 Within this context, the language of cont rolling movement to promote stability represented a not - so - radical shift from pre - Xinhai responsibilities. The emphasis on social control negotiated within an existing language of paternalism translated into Tianjin local government policy. Police and s ocial bureau home , appealing to a recognizable value for a settled population. 65 Charities were tasked with settle wandering disconnected individuals. The Tianjin Municipal Government, particularly the social bureau, saw labor management and increased production as the reveal important weaknesses in Nanjing governance, favoring actual outcomes rather than desired outcomes can fail to recognize subtle changes or continuities within the public morality of the Nan jing Decade. I am less concerned about why Nationalist programs failed than what they can reveal about the social values of the time. 63 SZGB 5, ( December 1928): 108. 64 SZGB 12, (July, 1929): 111. July 12, 1929. 65 Ibid. 120 primary keys to improving the welfare of the poor and society in general. Labor held the promise of both stimulating and supporting the rapid modernization necessary for resisting imperialism and improving social stability. Industrial labor specif ically demanded individuals to be settled and self - disciplined. Within the context of state - run industries such as workhouses, labor provided social bureau officials with an important terrain on which to imagine and map new levels of daily life control an d regulation. In to national policies, specifically the concept of nüquan which represented a radical break from Confucian values. By p roviding safe haven for women fleeing from vindictive mother s - in - law, abusive husbands, and various forms of enslavement, gender specific poverty relief helped to reshape the identity of women as independent from their role within the family structure. 66 A lthough the city government attempted many ways to stimulate private charity, at times independent acts of philanthropy could be perceived as problematic, unreliable, and potentially creating habits of dependency. For example, when the appointed street he ad, Yang Maosheng ( ˛Ÿ92+O ), personally paid the utilities for the poor residents on his street, city administrators praised his kindness but also arranged an emergency planning meeting to address how to carefully establish long - term strategies to prevent reli ance on him in the future. 67 The structure of appeals for generosity, regardless of how poverty relief was actually implemented, reveal significant aspects of the framework of social responsibility in the early twentieth century. Competition among benefa ctors to meet the 66 yuehu SZGB 7, (February 1929): 49. 67 SZGB 14, (September 1929): 197. 121 translated into a valuable form of social currency. After examining the perceived utility to both government legitimacy and individual status, I will turn to several of the specific institutions for poverty relief active in Tianjin during this period, keeping in mind that actual effectiveness of these institutions may be less relevant to understanding the values of social responsibility (as expressed by the Nanjing government) than examining stated intentions and purposes. The Department of Public Health . In her ground - breaking work on public health, Ruth Rogaski rightly points out that while Nanjing reformers were able to put in place the organizational infrastructure 68 However, fear that refugees entering the city might carry diseases with them meant that at least some fund ing found its way to the public health department which offered inoculations, isolation of contagious diseases, and basic healthcare. 69 Clinics opened by the public health department typically followed a similar mission statement which was to provide free m edical care to the poor who have no other means of treatment. Certain fees, including registration, were optional and contingent on the means of the patient. A clinic, zhensuo , in the second district offered both treatment from Western doctors and Chinese traditional medicine. Besides general health, these free clinics also offered OB/GYN, internal and external medicine, and eyes, 68 Ruth Rogaski, Hygienic Modernity, 234 . 69 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000181 - 017, August 1937. 122 ear, nose & throat specialists. The offer of free medical treatment was also used as a means of enticing people to come in for t heir vaccinations. 70 . 71 Tianjin Public Health received support from foreign organizations liked the Red Cross and from the profits collected from providing services to the foreign concessions. 72 I n August 1937, the Red Cross helped to staff and financially support the opening of a health clinic inside the Tianjin Vagrant Shelter. 73 Temporary shelters set up for housing refugees during harsh winters or during periods of political upheaval provided captive 70 YSB , May 22, 1929. 71 Tian jin jidujiao jiuji hui baogao shu [Report of the Tianjin Christian relief team], June 1933. 72 YSB , May 23, 1929. 73 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000277 - 005, August 1937 . 123 populati ons with the ability to enforce vaccinations and implement new social practices of cleanliness. 74 Health department workers and affiliated volunteers would enter the private living spaces of refugees to ensure that they were sanitary. If anything was found to be unsatisfactory, teams of workers would clean up shelter areas. The public health department paid particular attention to maintaining toilet facilities in refugee camps, mandating daily cleaning and the spreading of powdered disinfectants. They also encouraged refugees to eliminate flies and mosquitos by paying a small reward to the biggest collectors of the insects with used clothing and shoe donations. Using this method of rewarding refugees for killing pests, the temporary shelters maintained by th e Tianjin Christian Relief Association collected an average of half a million insects per month. Winter Relief . As a northern city, one of the biggest challenges faced by the collective charity institutions in Tianjin each year was caring for the numerous refugees that came to beg s ignificant planning and funds along with broad institutional coordination and collaboration. The minutes of meetings to organize winter relief were often published in the Yishibao . These meetings demonstrate that while state institutions like the police an d department of education participated, members of religious charities and leaders from the business community were equally important to the operation of this form of charity relief and that this was all openly discussed in the public eye. For example, t the #1 Poorhouse, which set up a winter temporary relief branch each year from 74 Tianjin jidujiao jiuji hui baogao shu [Report of the Tianjin Christian relief team], June 1933: 6. 124 November to March that could house up to 600 residents. This was meager compared to the overall need and size of religious operations like the China Red Cross which provided food and shelter for thousands of refugees. One of the trends that became increasingly evident in charity work after 1928 was the attempt to regulate and separate refugees. People with mental illnesses were restricted from entering winter relief stations to maintain order within the refugee shelter. Along with providing housing, the shelter provisioned food, drinks, clothing, and bedding. Although temporary, residents were given daily educati onal lectures and expected to complete simple jobs. 75 During an especially cold winter in 1929, increasing numbers of beggars were found frozen to death on the street. The Tianjin City Hall charged the security bureau with the responsibility of rounding u p all beggars on the street and sending them to the homeless shelter within five days of capture, regardless of their age or gender, and published this order in the YSB . 76 In the order, there is no distinction of deserving or undeserving poor, or making use less eaters productive as we m ay expect in Nationalist rhetoric, the emphasis is on rescuing everyone. This article also represents another sometimes publically criticize one anoth er and pass responsibility back and forth in the press . I will discuss this in more detail later in this chapter as we examine how refugees could at times organize their own relief associations and demand government assistance by marching on public office s. 75 [The interim solutions for the Tianjin special SZGB 17, (December, 1929): 42 D ecember 26, 1929. 76 YSB , February 7, 1929. 125 The provincial government in Hebei also organized temporary winter relief in Tianjin by organizing soup kitchens through its branch offices in the city. Although this help was welcomed, it was not received without critique. The journalist suggests tha t this relief work is inefficient to the detriment of the poor who must wait unnecessarily long. 77 Tianjin City Vagrant Shelter . Outside the Tianjin Shourongsuo. 78 The Tianjin Vagrant Shelter was originally organized to provide occupational training to the homeless and refugees and opened at least one branch shelter. In 1928, the shelter had a combined residency of about 500 individuals, which exceeded its capacity. However, by 1928 , this branch facility was being used by the po lice as a dumping ground for petty offenders. As the Nationalist appointed city government sought to establish its 77 YSB , February 4, 1929. 78 BYHB, September 31, 1931. 126 own authority over poverty relief institutions, one of the first actions taken by the new leadership was to discredit the former system, and in this case, the discredit was well warranted. By 1928, the shelter was in a state of near financial ruin and it was necessary to lay off many of the clerks who worked there in the process of reorganization as well as closing one of its branches. Appoint ed by the social bureau, Wang Huishen conducted an investigation into the previous shelter head, Liu Bingchun, who was suspected of issuing faulty expense reports during his term. 79 Not only did the process of discrediting previous operators help to legitim ate the efforts of institutional consolidation, it also shifted the blame for current problems to the past. Director Wang began instituting several changes to the charity during his tenure. First, he gave notice to the police that they would have to remov e criminal residents and stop using the shelter as a temporary jail. He also moved the main office to the branch office location. Another problem facing the shelter was the issue of ownership. Before 1928, the shelter belonged to a single individual, now it was incorporated and its property leases were placed under the name of the charity. The educational programs at the city vagrant shelter emphasized the development of vocational skills necessary for simple factory work. Typical of many shelters of th e time, the vagrant shelter operated its own small, light industrial plant. More surprising were the diverse government institutions that worked together in defining educational goals and providing flexible and varied opportunities for poor children and a dults seeking disadvantaged connected the police, social bureau, finance bureau, education bureau, and local government representatives together in ways that few other issues could. One such 79 SZGB 11, (June 1929): 83. 127 example is t he establishment of vocational schools , zhiye buxi xuexiao , at shelters by the Tianjin Education Bureau which helped these institutions to work towards self - usly, self - sufficiency was universally recognized as a critical necessity in charity work because of chronic lack of adequate funding. This desire for self - sufficiency reoccurs throughout documents on poor relief, making it a hallmark of charitable work d uring the Nanjing Decade. 80 e inner city Beiping Yuyingtang. 81 . While shelters offered training and basic subsistence, rural refugees and unemployed urban workers could find relief from the instability of the day labor markets by seeking assistance at charity workhouses set up by the Tianjin special city 80 SZGB 11, (June, 1929): 124. June 7, 1929. 81 BYHB, April 2, 1931. 128 government. T hese institutions sought to provide administration of relief for the entire urban district of Tianjin, which after 1927 had been broken into five districts and three special zones. Many of the organizational and administrative leaders received little or no compensation for their work in helping to organize their respective factories, suggesting that such volunteer work produced its own social currency. 82 In this early part of the Nanjing Decade, documents outlining plans for establishing workhouses emphasiz ed the positive benefits of labor for educating and stabilizing the poor more so than as a punitive measure. More often expressed was the value of poorhouse labor in sustaining the limited budgets of urban relief institutions. 83 Nevertheless, the expresse d purpose of these institutions represented a departure from pre - 84 As Lu Hanchao has argued, this type of rationalization marked a clear departu re with the past by delegitimizing begging as a recognized profession. While those who worked at the poor workhouse could expect very minimal monetary compensation, the factory provided for the basic needs of its workers distributing clothes, shoes, and s ocks. 85 vagrant shelter was put forward to the Tianjin Social Bureau. This drive towards 82 C[ SZGB 5, (December, 1928: item 8, 37. 83 See the constitution of the poorhouse listed above. 84 Preparatory office o SZGB 8, (March, 1929): 128. March 14, 1929. 85 SZ GB 11, (June,1929): 116. June 1,1929. 129 bureaucratic consolidation continued to be marked by the clear desire to create more effici ent policies of philanthropic relief and was motivated by both a desire to cut administrative costs and raise more revenue for the government shelters. The language of the consolidation meeting was careful to emphasize the purpose was not merely to save m oney, but to protect the livelihood of the unemployed workers and pay close attention is both attentive and courteous, an important distinction with the sort of abusive language contained in memoranda from the central government. At the time of the considered consolidation, the Tianjin Workhouse had a monthly budget of 2500 yuan with a planned expansion that would increase their monthly expenditures to 4010 yuan. The vagrant shelter had a comparable budget and planned expansion meaning that combined, the two institutions required around 8,000 yuan per month to operate. Rather than rely on voluntary donations, the consolidation meeting which included the directo r of the social bureau, financial bureau, and several shelters decided to establish a 1% supplementary property tax which would raise a minimum of 100,000 yuan per year. This fundraising plan was very successful and the required funds were raised in less than a month. 86 Although the factory represented a very popular mode of poverty relief, it rarely was able to meet financial expectations as the products it produced, such as textiles and fabrics, struggled on the open market. Thus, the factory head was not only charged with training and organizing unskilled laborers, they also 86 tax revenue was generated and starting August 1 st SZGB 13 , (August, 1929): 93. August 3, 1929. 130 87 This move to consolidate institutions reflected a broader drive towards creating multipurpose charity institutions. In September of 1 929, the Nationalist city government moved to further Workhouse under the leadership of Chen Baoquan ( ) which accounted for around 60 - 80 unemployed workers. The city poorhouse also took over operations of the #1 Vocational School ( ) by the end of 1929. 88 Although this consolidation was intended to save money and cut costs, it would be wrong to assume that this kind of measure was specifically intended to limit po verty relief. Instead, consolidations often also marked expansions in capacity. For example, the plan to reorganized #1 Poor Relief House was accompanied by a 10,000 yuan grant by the Tianjin Financial Bureau to increase productivity. 89 In a letter from the Tianjin City Hall to Chen Baoquan, the language surrounding this consolidation does emphasize the wastefulness of allowing potentially productive members of the urban society to consume rather than produce, but it also describes the poor not as lazy, b ut simply in need of work and better nutrition. The letter goes on to explain the work of reeducation, industrial training, and labor as positive forms of social relief rather than negative forms of welfare dependence. Of course, the ambitions of social p lanners often far exceeded the constraints of reality. To fund the newly organized 87 SZGB 11, September 14,1929, 116. 88 SZGB 16, (November, 1929): 131. November 7, 1929. 89 SZGB 14, (September, 1929): 131. September 21, 1929. 131 factory and training center, the #1 Poor Relief House proposed an estimated required budget of approximately 300,000 yuan which they hoped to collect from the Beggars Fund ( ). In fact, they were only able to raise 9,300 yuan in four months. With such a big gap, organizers sought to do the best with what they had. Not only was the factory unable to purchase enough machinery for all the potential workers, the few looms th at were purchased could hardly fit in the available facility space. In frustration, social bureau director Lu explained: If we can make everybody work, the productivity will definitely increase significantly. Just because we cannot expand our budget, we have people waste. So I think we should combine t his factory with the shelter and the reeducation place because they are similar organizations and they were all established by the government so combining them seems to be possible. After we combine them, we can avoid a lot of waste and save money and also consolidate our management. Not to mention the birds with one stone. In the capital city, and Hangzhou poor factories, each received a city grant of more than 10,00 0. I completely understand that we have a very tight budget in our city. But I still believe that after we combine these two places, the funding for the new organization should not be less than 10k. Later we can purchase more materials, more equipment, t who manages the organization will have a hard time, just like a very enough rice. 90 The emphasis here is not on the inadequate qualities of poor labor, but on the chronic lack of funding. The case is further argued that such an institution would quickly become self - sufficient. Self - sufficiency was less an abstract modern ethic than a practical necessity. Mr. Lu expre sses strong conviction that if jobs were available, the poor in the city would be more than willing to accept training and work. He draws greater attention 90 SZGB 14, (September, 1929): 131. September 21, 1929. 132 to the project of consolidation than appealing for funding from the city government in order to sel l his plan to city administrators, but it is clear that he sees labor as offering suggestions... that we can really give the jobless work and change consumption to pr oduction in order to benefit several hundred thousand people in our city in the 91 That this request was approved by the Tianjin Financial Bureau the same day it was requested, demonstrates the appeal of such an argument. 92 The consolidated poorhouse fell under the management of the city government with the president of the organization appointed directly by the city mayor. The president then appointed one director and one vice - director. Along with a central planning department, the poorhouse also h ad a department for recruitment , pinmin shourongbu , and a department of education and work , buxi jiaoyu bu . Two inventory clerks managed purchasing and distribution, and factory operations. The city poorhouse sought staff with extensive experience in ind ustry and enthusiastic about philanthropy. The leadership of the factory also established an honorary committee that focused on providing suggestions to improve the overall successful operation of the charity. 93 A report from the Tianjin City Hall conveye d the expressed purpose of the new poorhouse which was to reeducate the lazy wandering behaviors of vagrants and help them to form good habits, become self - reliant, and develop their individual morality. 91 SZGB 14, (September, 1929): 131. September 21, 1929. 92 SZGB 14, (September, 1929): 188. September 21, 1929. 93 SZGB 17, (December, 1929): point 5, 30. December 23, 1929. 133 As mentioned above, the consolidation of the poorh ouse actually represented a significant expansion. Whereas previously the #1 Poor Factory focused on teaching how to knit towels, weave, and make socks, the new factory began teaching a wider range of manufacturing skills. Since the number of able - bodied laborers almost always outnumbered the available jobs at the poorhouse factory, they also worked with the city labor department to find suitable temporary work for the residents. Working hours for the factory complied with national labor laws ensuring an eight - hour work day and rest on Sundays. In addition, Nanjing Decade relief institutions included detailed regulations W orkers at the poorhouse factory were required to take a shower once per week, cut their hair every two weeks, air out bedding in the sun four times per week, open windows daily in their dormitory, fold their clothes and quilts, clean their dormitory, wash their face and brush their teeth. 94 In this way, poorhouse administrators sou ght to reduce the spread of disease and also create a clean and disciplined work environment. Even the disabled and elderly were assigned simple jobs to prevent them from wandering or begging. 95 Worker recreational time was also regulated with smoking, dr inking, gambling, and handling dangerous materials (firearms or anything that might cause a fire) all forbidden. The poorhouse factory followed a system of rewards and punishments to increase labor efficiency and productivity based on production quotas and quality standards. 96 94 SZGB 19, (February, 1930): point 12, 62. February 11, 1930. 95 SZGB 17, (December, 1929): point 7, 30. December 23, 1929. 134 education. What is important here is that the new vocational school focused on working with younger children who could not work full time according to the lab or laws published by the central government that same year. 97 The educational department also ensured that vocational training complied with national standards of elementary education. Children spent half of their day attending school and the other half w orking. After graduating from the half - day school, the poorhouse would attempt to place the students in positions of permanent employment and support graduates with letters of recommendation. Especially good students were chosen for job openings at the shelter. Along with vocational education, the staff at the poorhouse were required to provide daily lectures on topics intended to improve the behavior of the vagrants sheltered there. 98 The poorhouse also helped to arrange for the transportation of refuge es and organized temporary relief programs during the winter. The health clinic at the poorhouse worked closely with the city hygiene bureau reporting any illnesses infecting the residents. Funding for the poorhouse was primarily provided by the city go vernment. However, to meet unexpected or temporary relief needs, the shelter continued to rely on private donations. The use of these discretionary funds required the prior approval of the city government which encouraged using other ways to provide relie f especially during the colder months. For example, in November of 1929 the Tianjin Special Government 96 SZGB 21, (April, 1930): 25. April 14, 1930. Contains a very detailed breakdown on this rewards and punishment system. 97 SZGB 17, (December, 1929): point 6, 30. December 23, 1929. 98 Ibid., point 9. 135 donated seventy sets of government stock old army uniforms and leather jackets rather than money. 99 The newly organized poorhouse also interacted with o ther government agencies to find opportunities to utilize the labor power of the homeless. Each day, the bureau of social work ( ) brought forty laborers from the poorhouse to work on their projects such as rebuilding roads. This relationship with the social bureau helped to alleviate some expenses needed to care for the homeless sheltered at the city poorhouse by providing laborers with one meal per day and five cents salary. The arrangement had been organized originally by the head of the social bure au, Xue Malie ( ;ËPœ&ø ), and the vagrant shelter. Although the city poorhouse was occupied by significantly more than the forty workers required, Mr. Xue found many of the 100 However, later it became clear that he wa s 101 In the months following the July 7 th 1937 Marco Polo Bridge Incident, war refugees began streaming into Tianjin, which itself was occupied by the Japanese in all areas except the foreign concessions by July 31 st . Although in a stage of immense government transition, the J iujiyuan provided continuous coordination of both public and private charity organizations. In August, working with all charity o rganizations 99 SZGB 16, (November, 1929): 94. November 15, 1929. 100 SZGB 16, (November, 1929): 87. November 13, 1929. 101 Ibid. 136 functioning in the city, the J iujiyuan led the construction of temporary shelters to house refugees. 102 Provincial Level Disaster Relief Work. city was not always quite clear. Even when the city was officially subject to the Hebei P rovincial G overnment, it took leadership in helping to organize and provide relief thr oughout the Northeast China region. 103 Its central role was defined in part by its attractiveness to refugees throughout the region. In response, several organizations like the Huabei Flood Relief Organization were established to provide a liaison between t he Tianjin police who often first encountered refugees, and other agencies which could provide them with aid. For example, during a flood in Jinghai ( M›#§ ) in late September, 1929, the police department coordinated with this organization to provide refugees with transportation to the east of the city. 104 Many of the individual charity entertainment events active in Tianjin sought to benefit causes across Northwest China. As a largely immigrant city, Tianjin residents possessed far reaching ties to diverse nati ve places. That the city served a leading role in many regional disaster relief operations could at times place the objectives of the city government at odds with local concerns. The Huabei P rovincial G overnment could force Tianjin to redirect charity fu nds away from city programs to respond to emergency relief. 102 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000277 - 008, August 1937. 103 SZGB 14, (September, 1929): 195. September 24, 1929. 104 SZGB 14, (September, 1929): 210. September 29, 1929. 137 This added to the instability of government charity institutions which often found themselves without funding. For example, after the Tianjin City Poorhouse took over operation of the vagrant reed ucation shelter; taxes which were previously used to fund the vagrant shelter were diverted to fund the Hebei D isaster R elief C ommittee. 105 These taxes were gathered exclusively from Tianjin businesses, not providence wide. Since the operational budget for t he consolidated Tianjin Poorhouse had been covered by the city financial bureau, the funding previously allocated to the vagrant shelter had been diverted Because this money was used to relieve N orthwest refugees, in the winter months even more refugees would flock to the city from the surrounding countryside. However, city government officials were not without means to frustrate and delay provincial objectives. Instructed by Hebei to provide rel ief for villages struck by famine, the city government formed a committee of all relevant departments to explain to the provincial government that they had no money to conduct the ordered relief. The correspondence from Tianjin concluded with a request for instructions on how to deal with this lack of funding. In response, Hebei sent a vaguely worded reply with instructions on how much money to give each family according to their level of poverty and instruct that village heads be excluded from distributing these funds to avoid corruption. It is probably safe to speculate that the city government chose to publish this correspondence to absolve its responsibility and reveal the unreasonable request made by the provincial government. 106 105 government which requests the taxes originally allocated for the Tianjin vagrant reeducation shelter to be SZGB 19, (February, 1930): 55. February 15, 1930. 138 Unlikely Benefactors: G endered Charity and the Modern Woman Tianjin Jiliangsuo . jiliangsuo , in the late Qing Dynasty without state sponsorship. However, after the Xinhai Revolution, the institution recei ved funding from the board of trustees appointed by the Tianjin county government. This funding covered the bare essentials and amounted to the Nationalist government, th e jiliangsuo also received a bride price that was paid by a corruption. By 1929, the Tianjin Jiliangsuo had largely fallen into disrepair and offered exploited women very little protection. The police, under the direction of a retired precinct chief, listed under the surname Zang, placed pressure on the families of prostitutes to take them back and pay any fines associated with their behavior. The 30 or so women housed there were all long - time residents. The Guomindang government appointed a new director to the jiliangsuo who quickly set about outlining the improvements he hoped to brin g to the institution and published the list he sent to the Tianjin county commissioner in the YSB . 107 His report focused on bringing educational reforms to give the residents a basic elementary education and practice sewing. Over half 106 YSB , February 24, 1929. 107 YSB , February 15, 1929. 139 education was more focused on practica l home - making skills rather than trade skills that would equip the women to make an independent living. As the previous chapter discussed, Tianjin was home to several significant , Guangrentang . By the institutions for assisting women and their young children. In Tianjin, funding for the yuehu . Yuehu referre d , ligongsi ( ) in an old style, one floor, square compound. It previously belonged to bureaucrat Zha ng Tiaochen ( 108 108 BYHB , September 26, 1929. Special page for the women refugee institution of Tientsin. 140 Association; and J . J. Chang (Zhang Renrui), Head of the Institution; taken with two inmates ( R ight). 109 The ), , funü xuehui , found that many women were not being helped under the current system. Mrs. Zhang was originally from Hubei Province and was de scribed in an article from the Beiyang Huabao as both kind and competent. She herself had suffered family - related violence and could relate her own suffering to the women in her care. 110 When writing her appeal to the Tianjin Financial Bureau to secure fun ding to establish this shelter, she described these women as desperate 109 BYHB, September 9, 1929. 110 BYHB , September 26, 1929. Special page for the women refugee institution of Tientsin. 141 to have complete facilities, because usually when women just escape, late at night, they have ve ry thin poor quality clothing, just enough to cover their bodies, and they have 111 This description further emphasized their physical danger, while clearly emphasizing their sexual vulnerability as half - s treets. Mrs. Zhang also made a higher appeal to Nationalist modern values of gender economy, education, and society, women and men are equal and to promote the developmen , nüquan 112 How did the was not merely to provide for the safety of vulnerable and displace d women in guarding done. The emphasis of this new institution was to reeducate women to be independent by equipping them with basic industrial skills which would perm it them to leave the shelter and make a living on their own, once again stressing the core value of self - sufficiency. For example, two famous barbers from Majiakou volunteered to teach women how to cut hair several times a week in the mornings. 113 111 yuehu, SZGB 7, (February, 1929): 49. 112 Ibid. 113 BYHB , September 26, 1929. Special page for the women refugee institution of Tientsin. 142 Figur e 2.11: 114 In her initial request, Mrs. Zhang did not mention the role of arranging weddings, so fundamental to many contemporary institutions, for relieving poor women (although the institution would later take on this role). Her requests were approved and the financial bureau initially committed 1000 yuan as a starting budget with a 400 yuan monthly operating budget. 115 114 BYHB, September 9, 1929. 143 srooms for career education. To improve the health of residents, the shelter also had its own clinic and outdoor exercise area. Women were provided daily food, clothing, and bedding. Although not ded some punitive measures. , fanxing , opium smoking. However, it is important to note that the founding regulations of the shelter very clearly argue against forcibly interning women. Each woman who chose to come to the shelter needed to record why they came and demonstrate their willingness to enter. 116 ed to protect women was to provide them a safe place as they sought divorce. These women were not necessarily poor but could be famous actresses or high - attention of the media after it was establi shed. 117 Seen as one of the most successful examples of social work in Tianjin under Nationalist administration , an article in the Beiyang Huabao emphasized its work , 118 However, unlike the very positive language produced in the 115 SZGB 8, (March, 1929): 190. Beginning of March, 1929. al request of 1500 yuan starting budget and 800 yuan monthly operating expense. 116 SZGB 17, (December, 1929): 35. December 23, 1929. 117 In depth articles on the shelter ap pear in all of the major Tianjin newspapers. 118 BYHB , September 26, 1929. Special page for the women refugee institution of Tientsin. 144 government documents discussing the shelter, the popular news also describes their work , ). 119 - Tan, Formerly an actress, gain ed popularity through a lawsuit, n ow an inmate of the institution. 120 Where articles in the Beiyang Huabao provided positive descriptions of this Association turned to the Yi shibao and Dagongbao when it felt that city hall was being unresponsive to its needs. In a letter to the Yishibao in February 1929, a member of the 119 Ibid. 120 Beiyang Huabao, September 9, 1929. 145 ilding is very limited and with so many again soon and then we will have no room at all. So please approve our location 121 able to effectively leverage public pressure through the newspaper to encourage the city government to respond in a timely manner. That the shelter was quickly settled at a new location may point to the effectiveness of this kind of strategy. Although a s ecular institution, its aims were contextualized in a Buddhist 122 observers? One major emphasis was on the level of order and individual self - motivation teacher to keep an eye on them at that time, but everything was well organized. Everyone could focu 123 The shelter also cultivated extremely high - levels of cleanliness (often compared with martial excellence), focus, and inner peace. The article describes the women who voluntee ) in the past, which provided asylum for women and marriage prospects but no training for self - support. 121 YSB , February 3, 1929. 122 BYHB , September 26, 1929. Special page for the women refugee institution of Tientsin. 123 Ibid. 146 Wh en Mrs. Zhang was appointed supervisor of the new shelter, she targeted aid to abandoned women, abused female servants, child brides , tongyangxi , and women who no longer desired to be prostitutes. Although the primary aim of the shelter was to train and e shelter would also help to arrange marriages. When the new facilities were completed at mitories were located on the east side and reception desk, offices, and reception rooms located on the west. The new complex was better secured and equipped with an isolated courtyard for women still struggling to escape their old life and family abuse. Although this area clearly served some level of punitive measure, its primary purpose was to protect women from abusive husbands and families or the potential violent connections of ex - prostitutes. That the area was secured less to keep intransigent wome n from leaving than to keep dangerous individuals out, is a subtle but important distinction. 124 The problem faced by many prostitutes who came to the shelter was an addiction to opium that was used by brothel owners to keep women from leaving or accumulati ng their own savings. Sadly, this kind of exploitation extended to the legal system as well. Brothel owners often filed lawsuits against women who could be held accountable for debts incurred while working for the brothel. Since these legal cases were ong oing, the security bureau effectively imprisoned these women in the shelter. 125 Outside the specific case of prostitutes, for the most part, forcibly interning women in the shelter was not necessary 124 In 1935, from January 15 to January 20, t he Tianjin Yishibao ran a five - day article chronicling the lives of women at the poorhouse, describing their daily work and study. 125 YSB , March 25, 1929. 147 out. 126 However, significant leeway was encouraged regarding prostitutes, courtesans, and maids who were recognized as having to undergo the most intensive reeducation. ent to approve Mrs. Her recommendation came after taking a trip south along the Grand Canal, examining poverty relief institutions along the way. She found that the Nanjing city government r estructured and expanded the city orphanage , yuyingtang , and combined qingjietang . It is worth The jiliangsu o was a shelter set up to specifically help out ex - prostitutes. It was originally established by an American missionary in 1901 in Shanghai and was then duplicated all over the country and operated by the local police starting in 1906. 127 These shelters, along with providing a safe haven for women, provided match making services. The qingjietang helped both young widows who could not live by themselves and abandoned elderly women. It also provided a place for these women and their children to live. However , it kept women isolated, allowing them to leave the type of shelter highlights the stark contrast between late Qing and Republican poorhouses. The restructured Nanjing fu yuan. They added a reformatory, ganhuasuo , a place to gather all of the young 126 SZGB 17, (December, 1929): point 9, 35. December 23, 1929. 127 welfare. The extent and responsibilities of urban police expanded drastically under the guidance of Yuan Sh ikai in the North and set an enduring pattern for police public relations in the first half of the twentieth century. 148 thieves and vagrants to be trained and reeducated. This important development, reveals how the process of consolidation began t o lump non - criminal poor with more hardened social delinquents. Mrs. Zhang also traveled to Hangzhou where the city poorhouse , jiujiyuan , was also going through the process of restructuring consolidation by bringing together many disconnected charities. S urprisingly, the Hangzhou compound was much bigger than those in Tianjin or Nanjing. It included six organizations; a birthing center, an old age home, a shelter for the disabled , canfeisuo , a free hospital, an orphanage, and a The year ly operating budget for the Hangzhou Poorhouse, 160,000 yuan, far exceeded the combined Tianjin operating budget of 100,000 especially when considering how much larger Tianjin actually was at the time. After visiting Nanjing and Hangzhou, Mrs. Zhang recom mended that the new consolidated Tianjin Poorhouse should accept anyone facing a difficult life and try to help as many people as possible regardless of age or situation. This suggests that rather than searching for ways to identify and squeeze the sought to expand those definitions. Returning to Tianjin, Mrs. Zhang lamented the women a nd had to turn many away because of a lack of space and a limited budget. This lack of funds also made it difficult to give the women individualized educations, as did their diversity in age and experience. Women in the shelter ranged from age five to ag e forty. others came from brothels. Some of them were never married, while others were 149 widows. Mrs. Zhang described many of the women in her care as unique individuals and conc luded her request quite personally: submit this request. I submit this request so that we can use the examples city and help more women in our city and give them individualized education. 128 In November, the finance bureau approved additional funding to expand the shelter to a doubled capacity of 60 residents with still more women waiting to gain residence at the facilities located at Hebei Xiyaowa ( ?¯0Á%U ) . 129 The expansion showed both the popularity of this institution and the continued strain on the city budget to meet the needs of the urban poor. An amendment to the general shelter constitution organized seven categories for permitting women to become resid ents. They include: (1) a prostitute who is oppressed and chose to leave her brothel, (2) women who were abandoned and have nowhere to go, (3) a maid, mistress, child bride, or concubine who is oppressed and wants to escape , (4) women who were tricked and sold, (5) vagrant women who are poor with no place to go , (6) those who were abused by family members or husbands, and (7) those who were trapped by the leader of circus or street performers. 130 While many of these women were brought to the shelter by th e police, some made their way directly to seek aid and were accepted. Along with 128 SZGB 12, (July, 1929): 88. July 4, 1929. 129 SZGB 17, (December, 1929): point 3, 33. December 23, 1929. 130 SZGB 17, (December, 1929): point 3, 35. December 23, 1929. 150 weaving, knitting, and sock making, the education department also set up cooking classes for women. 131 wa s more reliable and residency was limited. 132 to the women and 60% to buy new raw materials. The women who entered or left the shelter were carefully documented and each woman had her food, drink, clothes, quilted shoes, socks, books and other living essentials provided by the shelter. 133 The shelter also had its own health clinic for treating illness. Although the shelter remained rather small throughout its existence, its social benefits also extended into the community. Poor families from the surrounding area sent their young daughters to primary school and vocational classes operated by the shelter. This represents a significant departure from the closed, isolated nature of th e Confucian shelters of the past. It also demonstrates that the women who resided in the shelter were not terribly stigmatized as dangerous or diseased. 134 131 Ibid., point 7. 132 Ibid., point 9. 133 Ibid., point 3. 134 BYHB , September 26, 1929. Special page for the women refug ee institution of Tientsin. 151 Daily Schedule for the Tianjin Women's Shelter Summer/Autumn Spring/Winter Wake Up 5:00 AM 7:00 AM Breakfast 6:00 AM 8:00 AM Morning Work Hours 7:00 - 11:00 AM 9:00 - 12:00PM Lunch 12:00 PM 12:30 PM Afternoon Work Hours 2:00 - 5:30 PM 1:00 - 4:30 PM Dinner 6:00 PM 5:00 PM Self - Study Time 8:00 - 9:00 PM 8:00 - 9:00 PM Go to Bed 9:00 PM 10:00 PM Table 2.1 . 135 From the chart above, it is clear that women at the shelter had little time to be idle. There were also several regulations that were designed to encourage women to be more productive. During sleeping hours speaking was strictly forbidden and each resident was monitored for their work attendance and productivity, cleanliness, and perso nality. 136 Figure 2.13: 137 135 SZGB 17, (December, 1929): point 8, 35. December 23, 1929. 136 SZGB 17, (December, 1929): point 8, 35. December 23, 1929. 137 BYHB, September 9, 1929. 152 In January 1935 the Yishibao ran a five - day article describing several changes in the life of women at this shelter. After a woman seeking shelter registered, she would receive new clothes, bedding, and food. In the summer, they were provided with two sets of white pants and shirts. They wer e also given two sets of winter clothes each year, which included a purple sweater and a long blue coat. After settling in, women would be assigned to one of three class levels. Resembling the first established institution, each class focused on developi ng vocational skills; they also sought to help women achieve a broader basic primary education that was equivalent with a normal education. Since many of the women had little or no primary school instruction, they were further separated by age. Literacy p rovided the most important gauge of educational assessment. The textbooks used by the residents were similar to those used in public schools. As benevolent benefactor, the city - run shelter sought to provide all of the basic elements needed for women to be come good productive citizens in Nationalist China. 153 rls studying in the Institution. 138 embroidery; however , hair cutting had been replaced wit h the making of matchboxes. Most of the older students could already do both sewing and embroidery. Making paper matchboxes was created especially for the younger girls. Each woman was also responsible for washing their own clothes and quilts and the ol der students helped to take care of the younger. The reporter was impressed by two very young students, one six the other eight, at the shelter and described them as lovely, common kids. When the author as t hey just giggled; a picture of simple innocence 138 BYHB, September 9, 1929. 154 However, when the teacher pulled the six - year - old child over and lifted up her clothes, her small body was covered with scars. This young girl had escaped to the - moth care. In this example of state charity, effectiveness was measured not only in productive self - sufficiency, but in the protection of innocence and well - being of normal, relatable children. While this picture of b enevolence could be easily dismissed as superficial demonstrated, the Yishibao was able to operate under the Guomindang with relative freedom as a foreign - backed newspaper wi th Chinese staff that did not hesitate to reveal readership who often participated in acts of charitable giving, this extensive serial article was certainly designed to pla y up the sympathies of subscribers. Since resources for charitable giving were so limited, showcasing this particular charity in a newspaper specifically dedicated to promoting social welfare so positively, we can begin to have a sense of the range of eth ical values that motivated charitable giving during the Nanjing Decade and not merely how the state hoped to represent itself. In the main room of the compound, many girls worked at making matchboxes. The oldest girls were 12 or 13 years old. The repor ter described everyone as very lively; completely unaware that they should be suffering from loneliness, abandoned and without their parents. During a period when China faced endless accounts of suffering and tragedy, the smiling faces of young, orphaned children was a powerful image of state - run institutional legitimacy. The girls were very skilled and made the boxes quickly, counts ranging from 200 to 400. The job was provided by the Danhua Match Company 155 and the girls made a piece rate of 90 cents for ev ery ten thousand matchboxes. Although they could only make a tiny amount of money from their labor, it was enough to encourage them to be excited about working. Even when the teacher was elsewhere, factory work proceeded very orderly and everyone possess ed great self - discipline. The article also highlights elements of self - organized labor representation. From their own ranks, they nominated two monitors who acted as their leaders. Rather than emphasize the penal aspects of confinement or the criminalit y of the women sheltered, this article describes the residents as innocent, industrious, and obedient youths who, although pitiable and abandoned, have found meaning through labor and community. As discussed earlier, women who were accepted into the shelt er were not allowed to enter and leave freely; they needed permission from the dean to leave. Even near the end of the Nanjing Decade, these restrictions on movement were framed in a way that emphasized the protective role of the shelter rather than to in carcerate dangerous women to keep them from damaging society. The potentially violent or criminal connections of some women led the shelter to request a permanent police presence to ensure the safety of the occupants. Although this request was denied, the police maintained a close relationship with the shelter with special instructions to respond to any disturbances quickly. 139 Family members were permitted to visit twice a week, after prior approval, on Wednesdays and Sundays from 8:00 a.m. to 4:00 p.m. If the visit was related to marriage, it followed a strict procedure. It began with the man first submitting an 139 SZGB 12, (July, 1929): 111. July 12, 1929. This presents another important connection between the urban police force and institut ions of philanthropy. 156 application t o the shelter, after which the staff would begin an investigation about his family and background. Background checks guaranteed that potential husbands had no other wives or mistresses and that they were financially stable. If the man was approved, he w ould be permitted to exchange information with available women at the shelter. If the woman determine a day to let the potential suitor and resident to sit down and talk and only then could they discuss engagement and marriage. If the face - to - it would just stop there. After both parties and all requirements were satisfied, both families were required to sign a written contract. By acting in the role of matchmaker, benefactor. While finding a husband was an important and accepted way for a shelter resident to leave, it was not the only way. Any woman who found a job capable of providing a living wage was also permitted to leave. 140 While these women might be viewed as weak and exploited by empowering; giving them a voice in selecting a marriage partner, the skills to reach a basic level of self - sufficiency, and providing a safe haven from potential exploiters. existence, their budget was always guaranteed. In 1936, the shelter lost its status as an independent charity and became part of the Tianjin City Shelter , Tianjinshi Jiujiyuan . 140 SZGB 17, (December, 1929): point 8, 35. December 23, 1929. 157 used to support its operation. Mrs. Zhang had specifically requested that the funds be drawn from taxes collected on yuehu . As mentioned previously, yuehu was a term often associated with prostitution and other forms of female entertainment. Although this kind of policy could be foun d in many cities around China it was often strenuously contested by those who sought to eradicate prostitution all together. This debate was often manifest proposal was ac cepted without reservation, merely two years later the bureau also passed a law banning smoking, gambling and prostitution in #3 Special Zone in the fall of 1929. 141 Along with the controversy regarding its funding, for some social commentators, the work of the shelter was just too insignificant when compared with the overwhelming darkness of the prostitution industry in Tianjin. While some women were able to escape m a prostitute named Jin Heye ( ). S that she was abused by the head of a prostitution house , but after she lived at the wom , , escaped and went back to the 142 Drug addiction was used by brothel leaders to keep some women dependent and incapable of saving up money to leave. In another example, Lu Zijuan ( Lv3[Ts ) lost 141 te order to ban SZGB 14, (September, 1929): 87. 142 < :m:m > [The active work on the BYHB , December 7, 1929. 158 half because those who accumulated too much might try for independence. Another problem was t hat brothels restricted the movement of prostitutes and limited their contact with the outside world. Many of the most vulnerable likely had no aware of the safety offered by the she lter, some were afraid to leave: 143 women saving institute Tientsin. 144 143 Ibid. 144 BYHB, August 23, 1930. 159 Along with broadly aimed institutions for sheltering women, associations for specific social problems continued to provide for critical relief needs. The Tianjin , funv yangji yuan , focused on providing help to old disabled women. There was no expectation that these women would be industrially productive, but the institute still emphasized in providing for basic needs of shelter and food. A major contributor was the Meiyunshi Phil anthropy Club, which helped to raise money for this shelter. 145 Tianjin Police: Critical Agents of Social Relief . As we have seen under the guidance of Yuan Shikai, the Tianjin Police Force grew significantly to include over 2500 officers and quickly became a major influence in city governance. During the Nanjing Decade, the number of Tianjin officers continued to increase and their responsibilities as community leaders expanded. In a way, Tianjin police became the foot soldiers of modern social science, tas ked by the social bureau and city hall with identifying and gathering statistics about social problems within the community, organizing and coordinating government and non - government charity organizations, and establishing their own institutions for povert y relief. These aspects of Re publican police institutions have been tangentially discussed by other scholars, but deserve greater attention both as an important way that the local government was able to interact with the community, and as an important sha per of public policy. In 1928, after the city police had been reorganized by the new municipal government, officers were utilized as valuable tools for gathering population statistics. 145 < 6c BYHB , August 23, 1930. 160 Not simply the passive instruments of the social bureau, they urged local government institutions to provide housing for refugees found on the street. Interacting daily with the sympathetic to refugees and beggars, describing them as poorly clothe d and facing a pitiful state of malnutrition. For the most part, police department correspondence emphasizing the need to settle , than nuisance. 146 Police staff were present at most meetings of the cit organizations and were critically involved in coordinating winter relief efforts each year. 147 The Tianjin police acted as an important middle institution for responding to the needs of poor residents who were not housed in state institutions. For example, working with street heads , jiezhang , the police distributed one yuan to each poor family in March, 1929. 148 The police also provided security at various shelters and charity events. 149 They even operated their own schools for poor children and helped to distribute winter relief. The schools operated by the Tianjin police were a unique form of state - led charity initiative, as a territory where local and national policies could conflict sharply. These processes came together, for exa mple, in a half - day school operated by the police for poor children with funding from the local business gentry. 146 SZGB 5, (December, 1928): 108. 147 rd city government meeting decided to cancel tax for helping beggars and instead use 1% of property tax for helping beggars and SZGB 12, (July, 1929): 85. July 1, 1929. 148 SZGB 8, (March, 1929): 55. 149 SZGB 12, (July, 1929): 111. July 12, 1929. 161 As part of the consolidation effort put forth by the Nanjing government, Tianjin City Hall had planned to place the police - run school under th jiujiyuan. In response, the retired Police Chief Yang Jingchun wrote a letter pleading that its continued private operation be permitted. He argued that the police school was very effective at educating poor youths, requiring t en years of study to graduate. According to Yang, s tudents graduated with a strong ethical foundation and were well equipped to find employment and contribute to society. The school had already graduated several hundred students during its time in operat ion. At the same time, the school actively recruited the children of police officers, because the police brought many benefits to the local hardworking business community and poor alike. The previous police director, Mr. Chang organized the P oor P S chool , pinmin xuexiao , into two classes, one which met in the morning and one in the evening so that police officers and staff could volunteer to educate the students. The school was primarily funded by the local business community. Besides requiring daily funding, the school also needed temporary funding which was donated or collected by each police station. These officers did their best without a raise in income, although they did receive a bonus according to the number of students they taught. In the early 1920s, the nam e of the school changed to t understanding that the financial bureau needed to consolidate, but argued that this school was originally supported by local businessmen who used charity foundations specifically to fund the educational work. Here we can see that ownership of charitable activities could at times put local and city government interests in conflict and reveals that charity, 162 at least within the r ealm of education, could play an important role in community identity and cohesion. Mr. Yang and the other members of the business community feared that if this school came under the control of the city financial bureau, the structure of the school would d isintegrate, causing the poor children to be unable to go to school. From this example, it is apparent that local communities were often tightly knit and strategized to protect their own interests from those of the central city government. Bureaucratic c onsolidation not only promised to lower costs and increase efficiency, for these business leaders at least, it threatened to breakdown an efficient charitable system and symbiotic relationship between the local police and the local business community. The police also opened their own clinic to provide free treatment to farmers, workers and soldiers, charging only a small fee for medicine. As a pet project of the Tianjin chief of police, he estimated they needed to raise about 30 thousand yuan to open a hosp ital. Taking the initiative, he had begun to raise funding not only through the private donations of colleagues, but also by appropriating the fines paid by criminals. In this way he was able to raise about one third of the starting expense. To raise the r emainder, the security bureau advertised a variety show they were organizing for this purpose. 150 Along with running their own charity operations, the Tianjin police provided support to city charities such as the onetime donation of 200 sets of heavy coats a nd old police uniforms mentioned previously, to the Tianjin poorhouse during the onset of winter in 1929. 151 In times of particular hardship, the police worked with the city 150 YSB , April 14, 1929. 151 SZGB 16, (November, 1929): 80. November 3, 1929. 163 government to collect emergency taxes which were typically placed on entertainment establishments. 152 Of course the police, largely because of their keen awareness and relationship with the streets of Tianjin , could also disrupt traditional ways for the urban poor and displaced refugees to eke out a living. Within Chinese tradition, begga rs could claim supernatural connections and were sometimes attributed with magic powers. 153 As Lu Hanchao has pointed out, ever since the founding of the Ming Dynasty under a desperately poor peasant beggar, Zhu Yuanzhang (1328 - 1398), Chinese literature has been captivated by the latent potential for greatness among the destitute masses. 154 Even a rich merchant might sneak into the Tianjin slums to seek out the fortune telling powers of some aged beggar. However, this kind of folk religion was at odds with the modernizing efforts of Nationalist governors and on June 25 th 1929, the Tianjin Nationalist party branch commanded the police to actively prohibit vagrants from claiming to be immortal or having super powers. According to the party leadership, w hile this may have interrupted some beggars from making a living, the ordinance was passed in the spirit of protecting the urban poor from exploitation. 155 152 SZGB 19, (February, 1930). February 14, 1930. 153 Beggars had their own patron gods and literature often surrounded by an aura of mystery. Beggars might be concealed heroes or temporarily impoverished individuals whose fortunes might suddenly spring back. 154 For more on the legends associated with beggars see the th Street Criers: A Cultural History of Chinese Beggars (Stanford CA: Stanford University Press, 2005). 155 ing to be SZGB 11, (June, 1929): 63. June 25, 1929. 164 However , behind this seemingly benevolent intention of guarding against superstition, other dynamics of power were at work. B city government was also exerting its power to occupy the important position of sole arbiter of truth and legitimacy. Moreover, gathering money illegally without submi tting to tax. By depriving some poor from making a living through soothsaying and fortune - telling, police and street heads were helping to establish modern governance as the ultimate authority on the borders of acceptable individual identity. 156 This antag onism to superstition and folk belief also extended to more broadly accepted beliefs such as Buddhism. In April of 1930, the Chinese Nationalist Party Central Executive Committee sent out a nationwide memorandum that would forbid temples from adopting you ng monks and nuns. The police were encouraged in this memorandum by the interior ministry to investigate children who had recently become monks. This command sent down from the central government, describes the recruiting of children into the Buddhist pr 157 Any adolescent child who appeared to have gone through tonsure was to be campaign against tonsure, placed instit utional Buddhism and state authority into direct conflict. Many temples resisted these regulations, so each province and city was commanded to inform, earnestly investigate, and ban the practice. The Nanjing central 156 SZGB 11, 63. June 25, 1929. 157 SZGB 21, (April, 1930) 7. April 8, 1930. 165 government strongly urged that each reg ional government would actively promote this regulation. Why would the Guomindang be concerned with child tonsure as a violation of human rights? future. By singling out Buddh ism, the Nanjing government was forcibly redefining not officials claimed legitimacy by performing long - held rituals with precision, the Nanjing government sought to under mine traditional cultural and social forces with the homogenizing power of the state. 158 , ( ). Although falling under more typical police duties of incarcerating so cial delinquents, this institution is important to examine because of similarities in its organizing principles that closely reflect contemporary charity operations. For example, inmates were expected to take classes in basic literacy and mathematics, lea rn trade skills, and participate in physical labor. Lectures often focused , duoluo qingnian ( ) with a maximum capacity of 240 inmates. By providing a separate reformatory from the prisons reserved for hardened criminals, it becomes apparent that while many institutions were consolidating in the Nanjing Decade, others were becoming more specialized, largely along the lines in a growing understanding of sociology. 159 158 Ibid. 159 (wicked people reform institution) SZGB 21, (April, 1930): 25. April 17, 1930. 166 When city hall decided to provide road construction work to homeless beggars, the security bureau was tasked in selecting candidates for the work. The process repeated af ter the official opening of the #1 Tianjin Poor Factory as well. While the task of selecting who could work, on one level, increased the potential exploitive power of officers, there is also evidence that the security bureau supported the presence of day laborers in public space as the bureau publicly affirmed the demands of a group of beggars protesting the repeal of the 1% property tax to fund the operating expenses of the #1 Pinmin Gongchang . 160 Evidence of Agency: Mutual Aid Associations and Self Organiz ed Relief . Although much of this chapter has focused on how government agencies provided various forms of relief to the Tianjin urban poor and refugees from the surrounding areas, these individuals also found ways of organizing and helping themselves. Groups of poor residents applied to organize and open a pinmin shichang southwest corner of the city called Fuxinzhuang . 161 Here poor farmers organized to sell especially to poor urban residents directly. One of the more ex citing controversies that unfolded in this period surrounded the fate of the pinmin gongchang , opening of the #1 F actory and Tianjin City Hall hoped to use this form of charity relief as a model for m odern, productive, self - reliant charity work, but the whole plan nearly 160 YSB , May 9, 1929, the police were not the only government officials tasked with recruitment of poor labor for temporary work. The Social Bureau and the department of city labor (gongwuju) would also send officials to charities to find labor for road construction proj ects. Also see: YSB , April 10, 1929. 161 SZGB 12 (July, 1929): 247. July 15, 1929. 167 completely derailed within only a few months of its opening. As I have demonstrated the opportunity to work for a living was clearly recognized by the Nationalist regime as an essentia l human right. From the very beginning, the P oor P F actory was invested with the labor of able - these residents were not lifelong beggars, but victims of unemployment and economic inst ability. They helped to transform a dilapidated school into the first of what was to be a series of city - run factories for the poor. The work was dirty and backbreaking as the school was located in a geographic depression, which meant that its grounds were a giant slick of mud. 162 Even the roads leading up to the location were in a state of such utter disrepair that the workers could barely drag the construction materials to the site. Before its grand opening, signs that not everything was well with the facto ry began showing up in the newspapers. These were the opening salvos between city government departments before degenerating into an all - th the social burea u published a letter that was sent to the Tianjin City Hall, Department of Education, and Security Bureau, expressing alarm that no one had been appointed to direct the factory. That no one could be found to direct such a lauded model of modern charity wa s odd. 163 Concerns were heightened when even by the official opening day on February 28 th , no director had been assigned to the factory. Despite the leadership problems, the social bureau organized a team of officials to observe a poor factory that was oper ated by the Guangrentang as part of the inauguration activities. 162 YSB , February 2, 1929. 163 YSB , February 20, 1929. 168 Along with traveling observation committees, the supposed words of the beggars who would soon be working at the factory were presented in a spirit of praise: Dear Tianjiners from all over, today we have received relief, we have shelter, people are teaching us how to work for ourselves and study. We think back to when we had to beg as beggars, the bad shape we were in. It is as though we escaped from the depths of hell into heaven. This gre at blessing is coming from all of you, your monthly donations. From now on we will work hard and study hard to be productive and pay back your care and love. We have to yell Thank you! Thank you! Thank you! And we will work hard not to disappoint your ex pectations for us. Hopefully all the poor people will get real help and relief and this community will work to expand this poor workhouse to increase social productivity. 164 Although this is more likely from the pen of a secretary at the social bureau than the work and desirous to serve the public good, not as some lazy delinquent. The financial problems of the factory came to a head on May 7 th when rumors began to ci residents, was illegally budgeted to support the factory work and would be repealed. 165 After publically venting its frustration that a director of the factory had still not been appo sent a memo to Tianjin newspapers washing its hands of responsibility for the factory and peal to modern principles and nationalism: There was a plan to tax each family 20 cents a month for the first three months to raise about 160,000 yuan and then decrease the tax to 10 cents for the operating budget. In this way we would be able to build th e factory and take in all the homeless and poor people and make sanmin zhuyi a 164 YSB , February 2, 1929. 165 YSB , May 7, 1929. 169 reality. But since the beginni ng until now, it's been one big disappointment. No new factories could be built and so they had to rent a run - down school to turn into a factory, purchase any machinery. The Gonganju and each district sent a total of 170 people to the first factory already, and because city hall never sent anyone back in April, no one is in charge. So we have no funding and we channels, and really no one is in charge so the y don't even know who is responsible for this mess and there was no previous example to follow. So if the factory can even carry on. 166 The social bureau took all the money left over and donations of clothing from the Guangrentang and transferred it to city hall. A follow up report the next day said the workers were very nervous and finally d the funding be reinstated. This apparently caused quite a stir in the city. About 95 workers carrying banners demanding the reinstatement of the tax and wearing pinmin gongchang uniforms, began marching and yelling down the street. Although not a violent protest, the workers targeted two Rongpei and Liu Mengyang. According to the flyers passed out by the beggars, these two were against the Guomindang national policy an d should be beaten down because , minsheng zhuyi . - democratic, eliminate these two because they destroyed the factory and are causing damage to the poor people so they are our enemy. All people u nite to get rid of these 167 166 YSB , May 8, 1929. 170 What followed was a tragic comedy as the group went from government department to government department and each passed responsibility to the next. They head of the bureau himself came out to address the workers. In his brief speech he commended the workers and the have no authority to stop them so you need to go to the city hall yourself to make your 168 The petition group then traveled to the public security office and again the chief came out to addre ss the crowd, express his sympathies and encourage them. He then sent them away with a police escort and his full support for their petition. From the security bureau they traveled to the Guomindang Executive Party office which also expressed its support. The next stop was City Hall where the group elected four representatives to meet with the mayor. In the meeting the mayor told the representatives that everything was just a rumor, not to worry and that everything was fine and that they should go back to t he factory. 169 , the received more support. Below is the text of their petition: Because of the war, the famine, and t he communists have destroyed our villages and so many workers are unemployed, we are homeless and suffering. Those rich people, those gentry they, they live in the tall buildings eating good food, dressing so nicely with their wives and concubines. They ri de their horse and carriages throughout the city and we should be content to just be alive. Fortunately we have you leaders, district heads, and some other very good hearted people m aking the 167 Ibid. 168 YSB , May 9, 1929. 169 Ibid. 171 learn a trade so we can get out of the mud and have a decent life for the past few months. But then t he newspaper reported about how many government committees were discussing about ending this tax. In the first congress of the national party, it was proclaimed that everyone other than those loyal to the imperialism or the local warlords should enjoy fr eedom and privilege, even the poor. But now the beggars who are the most abused under imperialism and the local warlords, you officials who claim to be the voice of the government, really should have more sympathy for us. We suffer more than any other gro up of people. How come you are taking away that tax for beggars when we suffer so much more? Among all people we are the ones who suffer the most, so you should help us more. We are even lower than farmers. You cannot just talk the talk and not walk the wa lk. Whatever you approved at the meeting about repealing the tax should be reversed. Actually you should tax more of the gentry, to them this tax is nothing. Share your wealth. We are the poorest among the poor. Go back to your meeting and reverse your dec ision. We come here crying to you with tears in our eyes, our petition is with our tears. 170 The article following this one included an interview with the two men identified as the culprits behind the suggested tax repeal. Besides declaring their complete innocence, they The public pressure caused by the marching beggars seemed to be quite effective. After two months of confusion, the city hall finally appointed a director, Zhang Zhuxu, t o run the operations of the factory. The social bureau also appointed an official overseer to monitor the operations. 171 While the operations of the pinmin gongchang were temporarily secured, the tax was still repealed and funding for establishing additiona l factories slashed. 172 170 YSB , May 9, 1929. 171 YSB , May 10, 1929. 172 YSB , May 14, 1929. 172 Even though police often provided security for urban charity work, refugees and other disaster victims could also work for police themselves. In the temporary camps maintained by the Tianjin Christian Relief Association, capable ref ugees were appointed to maintain a record of who entered and left the charity, patrol major gates on the refugee shelter compound, and root out any potential fire dangers. 173 International Connections: Relief Work in the Nanjing Decade . The continued conspicuous presence of foreign concessions in Tianjin throughout the Nanjing Decade, and the charity efforts of foreigners in the city must be considered as parallel to the development of indigenous city institutions . Foreign concessions bot h provided an important source of income for city charities and often foreigners were present at meetings to plan and establish new charity work in the city. Here I will survey several of the important foreign charities in Tianjin and subsequently examine in the following chapter, the specific work of the YMCA in China and Tianjin. Rehearsal of the Chinese Costume Display, Jan. 16 th As shown in the Rotary Charity Night at the Astor House Hotel, Tientsin. 174 173 Tianjin jidujiao jiuji hui baogao shu [Report of the Tianjin Christian relief team], June 1933: 6. 174 BYHB, January 17, 1929. 173 Although established in 1923 with only two foreign members, the Tianjin Rotary Club was influential in organizing many activities to promote charitable giving. By its first anniversary, the club had over 184 members and friends representing British, American, French, Italian, Japanese , and Chinese nationalities in attendance. 175 International associations like the Rotary Club, YMCA, and Red Cross provided important networks for city elite to express the specific challenges facing China to an international audience while also providing c rucial experiences with international relief agencies whose ideals would influence the conversation on social welfare among 176 Beyond its stated purpose which was to create a more peaceful and just world, rotary members s ought to build up relationships through networking and develop businesses that served society. In 1927, the Rotary joined with the Huayang Blindness Prevention Organization of China to form the Blindness Prevention Association. In 1929, the Tianjin club h ad between 10 and 20 Chinese members or about one - fourth of the total membership in the city. Their charity work focused on education and a club that ran several schools, however , they were eventually shutdown because of unstable funding. The charity also employed two eye doctors specializing in curing Trachoma. The club was entirely privately funded through donations gathered at annual funfairs. These funfairs drew many city elite and included both Chinese and foreign business leaders. 175 Ontario, Canada, June 16 - 20, 1924. 176 Minneapo lis, MN, June 18 - 22, 1928. 174 Rotary funfairs usually consisted of art exhibitions and fashion shows which became an increasingly popular way to raise charitable donations during the Nanjing Decade. In Tianjin, the prime location for any charity to host an event was the Astor International Hotel. Al ong with t - he main attraction, visitors played games, watched dramas and juggling shows, observed Western fortune - tellers and dance. 177 Rotary events were well - respected in the Tianjin elite social community and even drew Japanese participation during a time of growing hostility. 178 Although membership in the club remained small, it was very active at the highest levels of Tianjin society and worked to modernize charitable concerns in the city. For example, the club raised over $4,000 to help disabled children . 179 The Rotary Club in Tianjin was terminated in 1952. 177 BYHB , January 19, 1929. 178 The Beiyang Pictorial Newspaper is one of many salacious gossip rags that were popular during the Nanjing Decade. Although its report ing is often more focused on the curves of the women models than the cause charity events are held for, it provides an excellent window into popular elite culture in Tianjin during this period. 179 - Fifth Annual MI, U.S.A., June 25 - 29, 1934. 175 th . 180 Although missionaries decried Nationalist attempts to consolidate charity work in China under state control, philanthropists often organized themselves under umbrella organizations that united the charity work of various denominations. For example, the National Christian Council of China , Zhonghua quanguo Jidujiao xiejin hui ( ) was formed in 1922, the same year that Ni Tuosheng (Watchman Nee) began the Fuzhou Church Movement. Delegates from Protestant missions and churches all across China comp ri sed this council, excluding Roman Catholics who org anized their own Apostolic Delegation. 181 The growing crisis of the early twentieth century meant 180 BYHB, January 19, 1929. 181 For more on the National Christian Council of China, see: The Burke Library Archives at Columbia University, Union Theological Seminary, New York. Na tional Christian Council of China Records, 1919 - 1950. localization in China. 176 on their individual charitable resources. The international dimensi on of poor relief meant that Japanese aggression in While in China in the early 1930s, it was by no means left unscathed. In 1931, the city was rocked by artillery shells launched from the Japanese concession as Chinese bandits , hired by the Kwantung army , - emperor Puyi was spirited away to be installed as th e puppet dictator of Manchukuo. An explosion of China Press, the North China Herald, and t he China Weekly Review. However, while the city core escaped the magnitude direct devastation experienced in Shanghai during the January 28 th Incident until the city was conquered in 1937, beginning in the early 1930s, Tianjin received a rapidly escalating number of war refugees . These refugees, often displaced fr om rural towns and villages and thus ill - equipped to make a living in the city, sought to escape the sporadic violence of military aggression and roving groups of lawless soldiers that had turned to banditry. As refugees fled contested areas in the hot sum mer sun often with only the clothes on their backs, they made their way to the open areas ou tside of Tianjin city. Bandits set up check points along the routes to the city in order to extract any valuables they might have carried with them. The Tianjin Chr istian Churches worked together to provide temporary shelter to these refugees. As o ne young woman explained : I was so afraid of losing my child and with the soldiers chasing us with rty. 177 If we and wasted time worrying about our valuables we would have lost our child. When I first arrived here, it was just an open shelter. During the day we suffered from the hot sun and during the night the rain and wind assailed us without cover. I t was so horrible until the association started building temporary shelters. They have taken in as many as possible and all the refugees are happy and grateful. 182 The temporary shelters were communal, providing housing for multiple families. Men were r equired to sleep in their carts outside, while women and children could sleep in the tents of 50 to 60 people each. By 1930, Tianjin was also experiencing a growing localization of Chinese church authority and the extensive experience of Christian chariti es in providing emergency relief meant that Chinese Christian leaders were often sought out by local government officials when organizing committees to respond to the increase in city - bound refugees. In the aftermath of the Japanese invasion of Manchuria, the Tianjin Christian Relief Association organized a shelter for provincial refugees at Dongjuzi. One Tianjin pastor explains the emergence of this united charity association in the midst of great turmoil: My country for the past few years has suffered fro m floods, famine, and suffering is unendurable. Recently, in four provinces, there was a coup and this coup has spread down to the mainland. Many war refugees have come to Tianjin without shelter, food, or clothing, the situation is terrible. During this wartime, my organization has united with other churches, the Salvation Army, the YMCA and YWCA, and all Chinese and foreign missionaries and medical doctors to create the Christian Relief Association. As the bombs fell, we desperately tried to rescue refugees and provide them with safe shelter as a duty of love. Fortunately Tianjin itself seems to have escaped the bombing. But outside the city, people in the abuse and robbery deciding to abandon their homes and come to Tianjin. More than thirty thousand people came. So all the charity groups in the city needed to work together to assist them. This relief association set up over 200 temporary shelters. We provide their daily food and all the workers here are from local churches, the Salvation Army, and the YMCA. We all share the work. Volunteers have 182 Tianjin jidujiao jiuji hui baogao shu [Report of the Tianjin Christian relief team], June 1933: 1. 178 also come from a Tianjin youth fellowship group and include many students. From morning till night they wo rk tirelessly and their spirit of charity brings much encouragement. The shelter will choose representatives to go to other areas to observe and investigate and after the battle has quieted we will send out ambulances to take families back to their homes. In this way, we will complete our responsibility. In this magazine we wish to publically recognize all the volunteers and charitable donations as well as establish a written record of this good work. 183 Unity and consolidation were not questioned in the fac e of such overwhelming need. bleeding masses of war victims clamoring for survival and eking out their subsistence. 184 While the commemorative publication describing the wo rk of the Tianjin Christian Relief Association clearly emphasizes the vulnerability of refugees in a blatantly gender specific way, it also reveals rural refugees as possessing great tenacity They came with donkey and horse - driven carts. In the countryside it is their way to make a living, they cannot carry their land so they carry all their personal possessions on their cart. They can abandon their money and their clothes but not their cart. If they do, when they return to 185 Rural refugees were mobile and could continue to make their livelihood even after losing their homes and fields. Emergency war relief focused on providing temporary shelter to those displaced by violence, but they often had to contend with the long - term effects of displacement. Although most of the refugees were sent home after the fighting died down, about 130 183 Ibid. 184 The Hypothetical Mandarin: Sympathy, Modernity, and Chinese Pain (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2009). 185 Tianjin jidujiao jiuji hui baogao shu [Report of the Tianjin Christian relief team], June 1933. Includes descriptions of refugees focused primarily on pregnant women or women who had just given birth and their particular hardship of waiting for husbands. 179 refugees could not return because their husbands were dead, their h omes occupied or their health failing. As the temporary relief work drew to a close, rather than release these refugees into the care of state facilities like the jiujiyuan, the Tianjin Christian Relief Association (TCRA) transferred these remaining refuge es to more permanent shelters of food and cash. The provisioning of temporary war relief by the TCRA also provides another important example of how faith - based charity o rganizations and state relief programs overlapped and functioned together. After an outbreak of small pox at the shelter, the Tianjin weishengju ordered infected refugees to be sent to the clinic for treatment. Often the refugees who contracted these communicable diseases were children. While the city hospital provided these children with room and board free of charge, they took no responsibility f or the parents. Recognizing this as a legitimate need, the association began sending food to the parents of sick children on a daily basis. The TCRA also worked with the interfaith Red Swastika Society which was often the first civilian organization to en ter war - torn areas to determine if it was safe to send refugees back to their homes. 186 186 Ibid. 26. 180 . 187 Similarly, the association adopted several practices typical of government social relief programs particularly in education. The education department of the association utilized a popular textbook called - Word Textbook to teach children ba sic reading skills and other textbooks for two hours each day. After studying, nurses stood ready to check the health of the children and inform them about how to maintain their personal hygiene. Religious education was also held at the camp but it was not mandatory to receive relief aid. Of the several thousand refugees in the camp, only about 100 attended the Wednesday night services held there. Following the influence of the 187 Ibid. 181 ame activities. . 188 Far f . As a thriving treaty port in North China, Tianjin was also attractive to foreign nationals fleeing their own countries. While significantly smaller than settlements in places like Shanghai, these foreign populations still left an important mark on the cit y. Jewish refugees, fleeing the Russian Revolution, made their way to Tianjin and settled 188 Ibid. 182 there establishing a small but thriving community. 189 Although an extremely small phans captivated the imagination and interest of newspaper readers and deserve some discussion. Leonid Petrov, a researcher at the Australian National University, described the journey of Russian Jewish refugees as one wrought with danger from bandits an d the threat of Soviet attack. 190 In September 1929, the city police began to systematically record the location and occupation of all Russian refugees. 191 They found that most of them lived in the #3 Special Zone. An article in the Sentinel commented on the many Russian female refugees that migrated to Tianjin in the 1920s , 192 Of the 59 identified, most relied on charity to obtain their daily bread o r they participated in the day labor market to earn a subsistence. Several had been contracted by the horse track in the British concession to feed the horses. 193 As Helen D. Dahlin, the daughter of a medical eigners, I remember my French tutor who 189 The Central Archives for the History of the Jewish People hold archives of the Jewish people in Tientsin from (1920 - 1957). The Hebrew University of Jerusalem, Edmond J. Safra Campus, Givat Ram, Jerusalem. 190 14 th Biennial Conference of the Asian Studies Association of Australia in Hobart, Tasmania, 30, June 3 - July 2002, http://www.north - korea.narod.ru/immigrants.htm . 191 Isabelle Zimmerman Maynard, C hina Dreams: Growing Up Jewish in Tientsin (Iowa City: University of Iowa Press, 1996). 192 The Sentinel , (April 16, 1926): 15. 193 SZGB 14, (September, 1929): 56. Sept ember 5, 1929. 183 was a White Russian refugee. She told me some harrowing stories about her escape and 194 Another group of foreign refugees living in Tianjin includ ed German Jewish refugees after Hitler took power in 1932. Although far removed from the persecution of Europe, Jewish families living in Tianjin were not exempt from the influence of anti - Semitism. Ernst Wolff grew up in China in the German concession. H is family was active in the German Association. After studying law in Germany, and then being fired after trong nationalist 195 However, gradually the overseas community was infiltrated by Nazi agents, and the Jewish families were kicked out of the German Club. 196 The Nanjing Decade brought with it a heighted awareness that the plight of the poor was in more closely associated with patriotic expression as a clear demand of a modern society. While the Xinhai Revolution transformed the motivations and sources of charity, as did the growin g influence of foreign concessions, a greater emphasis on educating the poor coincided with increasing literacy rates which brought more and more people to address the transparency of charity operations and establish a lively public sphere for posing new ideas and criticizing existing institutions. While the organs of the Nanjing government 194 Midwest China Oral History and Archives Collection, St. Paul, MN, (1976): 5. 195 196 Wolff, interview, (1976): 39. 184 were able to exert authority at a level unprecedented since the fall of the Qing Dynasty, local authority and autonomy remained important values defining charity work in the city. A new emphasis on weisheng generally improved the experience of receiving owed women to give birth in a clean environment. The city also operated free clinics and hospitals for refugees and urban poor alike treating minor illness and vaccinating against disease. 197 In the following chapter I will look specifically at how attemp ts to reorganize charity work on a city government level interacted with private religious concerns among traditionally established charities like the Guangrentang , Christian charity organizations, the work of ecumenical groups like the Red Swastika Societ y and other allied faith groups. 197 SZGB 14, (September, 1929): 182. September 19, 1929. 185 CHAPTER 3: FASHIONING A MODERN ETHIC: RELIGIOUS INSTITUTIONS AND INDUSTRIAL WELFARE IN TIANJIN. Tianjin is a relatively young city by Chinese standards, which by the mid - nineteenth century had become the most important seaport in North China with a population in 1840 of over 100,000. 1 This population later skyrocketed to around one million by the turn of the century as it became the essential trading capital of North China. John Innocent, a missionary in Tianjin for over thirty years, described the city as both modern and progressive, 2 As a trade city which drew migrants from many of the farthest corners of China, religious traditions in the city were both diverse and well - developed. Before being forced to open large inte rnational concession areas to foreign powers after the Treaty of Tientsin (1858), Buddhism, Daoism, Islam and the Lijiao folk religions claimed numerous followers within the city. By the middle of the nineteenth century, there were over 500 temples in the city and its suburbs. 3 By the 1880s, there were four mosques in Tianjin with Islamic households accounting for more than six thousand families. Buddhism, however, was clearly the dominant religious influence in the city with ninety percent of all families belonging in some way to the religion. 4 In this chapter, I will examine how several religious traditions intersected with modernizing ethics of productivity in ways that both influenced and informed one 1 Kwan Man Bun, The Salt Merchants of Tianjin: State - Making and Civil Society in Late Imperial China (Honolulu: University of Hawai'i Press, 2001), 12. 2 G. T. Candlin, Joh n Innocent: A Story of Mission Work in North China (London: United Methodist Pub. House, 1909), 65. 3 Ren Yunlan, Jindai Tianjin , 223. 4 Ibid., 224. 186 another. As I have demonstrated in the first two cha pters, regardless of the idealism of state projects, fiscal restraints meant that the local government was never capable of enacting a social welfare policy that would exclude faith - based organizations, rather they were fundamental to any measure of succes s. While the municipal government made , many of these promises were met, in some degree, by community organizations. The Tianjin bureaucracy, although sometimes antagonistic, worked with local or ganizations ranging from secret societies to foreign missionaries, to meet the needs of the urban poor. Rather than interpret the period from 1911 to 1949 as one of failed central governance, I argue it represented a period of immense creativity, civic re sponsibility, and great interest in service learning. Here collaboration is used in the best sense of the word, to imply cross institutional alliance, interfaith charity work, and civilian led disaster relief. As an immigrant city as well as a concession territory, Tianjin was host to the widest possible range of religious and secular charity organizations. philanthropy, I will look at three specific examples. The first of t hese is the appearance interested in the Tianjin YMCA specifically because of its significant impact and involvement with relief work among Chinese elite, its use as a model for nationalist officials, and its nearly complete indigenization prior to the communist victory in 1949 . I movement, known as the National Christian Council of China (N CC). Although based in Shanghai, the NCC became a powerful influence on Christian social policy in China and 187 its strategies for improving the conditions of cities, especially among poor workers, clearly influenced the scope of Christian charity in Tianjin as well. I will then turn to examination of the uniquely interfaith swastika societies which organized to promote Buddhism as a transmitter of benevolence and charitable giving. This chapter further connects with existing case studies of Tianjin relief by focusing narrowly on how institutions of charity and philanthropy intersected with the social welfare provisions, I will seek to demonstrate how diverse private organ izations functioned alongside the city government to shape and reflect modernizing ethics of social responsibility by responding to transforming definitions of humanitarian need. These institutions often worked in tandem to address the social welfare requ irements of the city and region while maintaining distinct motivations and identities. Based on internal documents and local news media sources, I will explain how these religious organizations rationalized policy changes and the focus of their relief eff orts, often compelled by city government attempts at welfare consolidation and control. It will further explore how various segments of the public received these changes and encouraged specific forms of aid. The destruction wrought by continuous warfare, natural disasters and a weak central state in early twentieth century China combined to produce an almost constant stream of refugees traveling through and to this important center of foreign influence which set the stage for varied Nationalist experiment ations in governance modernization. 188 Christianity and Public Health Advocacy . After the founding of the Tianjin YMCA, the organization very quickly became on health advocacy. I n 1903, the Y MCA/YWCA hosted several public lectures on the practic e of foot - binding. The Dagongbao described the work of the Tianjin branch as seeking to change local customs and traditions to recognize that girls have the same capacity for learning and understanding that men do. 5 Doctors and students from the Tianjin M foot - binding did to women. 6 MCA/YWCA also partnered with local elementa ry schools to supply equipment and organize physical education classes. 7 opened evening classes in 1904 and sent promising students to continue their education in Japan . 8 The YMCA lecture hall in Tianjin also served as a pulpit for young Chinese intellectuals who advocated democratic principles. I n a meeting which included members of the business community, several local banks and city newspapers, the speaker argued tha t all people have the right to participate in the government. Without representation, the state had no reason to respond to the needs of the people. 9 The Y MCA was a bastion of 5 DGB , April 5, 1903. 6 DGB , May 1, 1903. 7 DGB , September 3, 1903. 8 DGB , May 23, 1904. 9 DGB , June 3, 1910. 189 free speech and cultivated civic responsibility by hosting leaders of suppressed newspapers and allowing them to use the lecture hall. 10 One arena where this was most visible was the realm of public health. The YMCA promoted health education in Tianjin as it did throughout China through large mass demonstrations and lanter - piece lantern slide show that focused on how diseases enter the mouth or nose. It emphasized the importance of clean air, drinks and food, utensils, and food handling, of customs in foreign countries and person al habits in relation to health; q ualities that were later replicated calls attention to how germs are spread through his careless habits to members of his family and others. Emphasis on preventative measures including covering coughs and sneezes, refraining from kissing and handshaking, 11 using clean handkerchiefs, and washing frequently; the slide sho industrial settings. 12 The YMCA also actively contributed to Weisheng Magazine , established in March 1924 in Shanghai, and promoted the public health activities of W. W. Peter, M.D. who traveled widely i n China promoting cleanliness and health. Particularly popular were 10 DGB , June, 6, 1910. 11 Health Measures Adopted in Modern China Child Health Magazine (June 1924): 247 - 250, Box 94, Articles, undated and 1917 - 1924, Records of YMCA international work in China, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, Unive - 1924, Records of YMCA international work in China, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 12 international work in China, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 190 lectures on how to take care of your baby, which taught mothers how to bathe their infants and other wellness measures. In the two pictures below, the image on the left shows the YMCA pu blic lecture s Police Chief Yang and Figure 3.1: (Left) YMCA Lecture H all prepares for Dr. Peter; (Right) Police Chief Yang 13 Dr. Peter encouraged Chinese leaders to mandate vaccinations in schools and organize students to promote public health. 14 As part of his campaign, Dr. Peter organized a survey of health conditions in seventeen s chools in two East China cities with 3300 students examined. The School Hygiene Program of the Council on Health Education included: (1) physical and medical examinations of the students, (2) correction of defects and treatment of remedial diseases, (3) co ntinuous health supervision of the students by relating doctors and nurses of the 13 1917 - 1924, Records of YMCA international work in China, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 14 Literary Digest , (Undated). Box 94, Articles, undated and 1917 - 1924, Records of YMCA international work in China, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 191 community to the school, (4) training teachers in summer schools and systematic health teaching in schools, (5) supervised play, and (6) sanitation of school buildings. 15 Th e picture presented to the public by these surveys was largely sympathetic, and received praise by the increasing number of students being sent to school. All of the schools that Dr. Peter visited were overcrowded, and the consensus among parents and educ ators alike was that health services were equally important to education. In addition, while previously little attention was given to providing playground space, city schools had begun to organize more facilities and time to play in the open air. The acti vities of the school chil dren, who played games like tug of war, drew the attention of many bystanders which helped to draw further interest in discussions of public health. An article from China Health Magazine suggests that the work in public health prov ided a problems than boycotting foreign goods, going on strike, or forming patriotic associations. Many of the students in these modern schools were enlisted by admini strators to give healt h talks on the street corners. Christian Models of Social Welfare . After the city was opened to foreign concessions and the Treaty of Tientsin established the right of foreigners to travel throughout inland China, Tianjin became a m ajor hub of missionary activity in the northern regions. Although the agents of Christian proselytization were often met with considerable hostility and misunderstanding, few 15 missionary movement helped to shap e public health in China, see: Sonya Joy Grypma, Healing Henan Canadian Nurses at the North China Mission, 1888 - 1947 (Vancouver: UBC Press, 2008), http://site.ebrary.com/id/10348855 . 192 other foreigners interacted at as many levels with China during the early twentie th century. Many Western recollections of China describe missionaries as populating a unique world. For example, Helen Dahlin who grew up in the British concession in case especially for foreigners who were not involved directly in missionary work. Acts of generosity towards Chinese beggars could be interpreted as foolishness by the foreign community in Tianjin. In the same interview, Helen remembers how her father was 16 Often for the children of foreigners, their only major contact was with s ervants. social point of view, the two groups (military and missionaries) maintained a different ery much among 17 Consequently, while missionaries made up only one component of the foreign presence in China, they were often the most eager to interact with Chinese people. Chris tian organizations, although not claiming as substantial a membership as other philanthropic religious groups, could exert an important influence in shaping the ethics of social responsibility and organizational structure of contemporary charity work becau se of the unique interest in European and American forms of social organization. Jun Xing 16 Dahlin, interview, 3. 17 Wolff, inteview, 6, 19. 19 3 rightly places this enthusiasm within the context of the American Social Gospel Movement. 18 One important way that Christian organizations functioned to influence the expectations of labor was through establishing model communities. The first model community established by the YMCA was created in the Pudong District of Shanghai in 1925. 19 throughout China, including Tianjin. The village included about 60 homes, some of which were contributed by the Shanghai Rotarians. 20 The YMCA sought to create cheap sustainable housing along with a sense of community through group events. V olunteers taught village children to sing Christian hymns and patriotic ballads, while handing out small gifts and sweets. The community brought together 24 families that included 88 people. At the center of the village stood a social center equipped with classrooms, game rooms, and club rooms. Although the village was very small, people from the surrounding neighborhood often came to participate in the community activities of the village. Architecturally, the construction focused on providing ample window s for light and fresh air, using cheap building materials to keep rental costs low, semi - detached houses to provide privacy, and small gardens to beautify the environment. In addition to the 18 Hsing Ch n, Baptized in the Fire of Revolution: The American Social Gospel and the YMCA in China, 1919 - 1937 , (Bethlehem: Lehigh University Press, 1996). 19 Industrial Work, Box 94, Miscellaneous reports, undated and 1923, 1935, Records of YMCA international work in China, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 20 The Rotarian , (February 1927): 14. 194 community center was a playground for children. 21 The YMCA was pa rticularly important for advocating the importance of play in adolescent education. The village utilized several regulations to ensure that it would continue to serve low income workers. E ach tenant was required to have steady employment, no one with an income of more than 40 yuan per month, and no subletting was permitted. This on social behavior were also implemented: No opium smoking, excessive drinking, gambling, o r immoral practices were allowed. Villages were also required to keep their houses clean and the village gate was closed at night from the hours of 10:00 pm to 5:00 am. 22 YMCA volunteers also helped watch the children of workers during the day and distribu ted free vaccinations against cholera and typhoid. The community also worked together to complete simple projects that would improve the overall health of the community. The two following images show children from the model village attending a kindergar ten class. Images of Sun Yat - sen and national flags adorn the classroom demonstrating that Christian leaders understood the importance of nationalism for 21 Playgrounds represent an important change that Christian practices brought to the Chinese educational system. Confucian education stressed learning as a means of creating disciplined moral behavior and although play was never entirely absent from Chinese ideas of youth education in the late Qing, it remained of secondary concern. That YMCA introduced physical education and play as fundamental components of childhood education was met with much enthusiasm among young Chinese educational reformers. For more Childhood 12, no. 1 (2005), and Jon L. Saari, Legacies of Childhood: Growing up Chinese in a Time of Crisis, 1890 - 1920 (Cambridge, MA: Co uncil on East Asian Studies, Harvard University, 1990). 22 Indus trial Work, Box 94, Miscellaneous reports, undated and 1923, 1935, Records of YMCA international work in China, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 195 establishing their legitimacy to educate. The YMCA promoted a labor education campaign which provided personnel to diversify their skills and minimize unemployment. The picture to the left demonstrates the outdoor physical games that the YMCA educational staff practiced with children. The YM CA introduced collective physical education as a cornerstone of modern education. 23 Figure 3.2: (Left and Right) Image of Children from the YMCA Model Village. 24 Figure 3.3: (Left) Dissinfectant Spray Cart (Middle) Boys Win Awards for Killing Flies (Right) Workers at YMCA Model Village Clean F e tid Water. 25 23 Ibid. 24 Ibid. 25 Ibid 196 The left image above shows a cart used to spray chemical dissinfectant around the village. In the picture on the right, members of the model village are working together to clean up a small ditch that contained fetid water. The middle image shows a group o f boys tasked with trapping and killing flies. Particularly in the warm months, flies were targeted as transmitters of disease. Thirty boys from the village were taught how to catch and kill flies and also keep their hands washed. The YMCA offered prizes to the boys who caught the most flies and paid 5 coppers for each pound collected. Along with setting up a school for the children of workers, the YMCA village also accepted neighborhood boys into their day school and offered classes for adults. The pic ture on the right shows neighborhood children that attended Saturday classes held at the community center and the image on the left shows rickshaw pullers gathering around a YMCA teacher. These open air meetings taught classes in English, Chinese, math, an d Christianity and operated night schools for students from 14 - 38 years old. Figure 3.4: (Left) Rickshaw Pullers Gather around YMCA Teacher (Right) Neighborhood Children Attend Saturday Classes. 26 Several additional unique aspects of the YMCA model vil lage in Pudong included a music club, a service club that organized twelve strong young men from the village to 26 Ibid. 197 meetings, providing protection as night watchmen, pr esenting YMCA movies to thousands of residents of the surrounding community and picking up any trash on the roadside. 27 While the village expanded little over the course of several decades, hundreds of notable Guomindang leaders visited the village and attempted to replicate their success, often on a much more massive scale. As Lipkin has pointed out, the YMCA house to eliminate slums. 28 Jiang Jieshi praised the YMCA and a new scheme for building up better society. May it be developed from near to far in order to help the construction of a new C 29 One of the qualities of the village that particularly interested Nationalist Part y leaders was its success in cultivating strong healthy potential laborers. The Chinese YMCA was a vocal advocate for public health and often held seminars on how to take care of children with competitions for healthy babies as shown in the following pictu re on the left. The image of the young man flexing line shows the group of young men who served as leaders of the health campaign. On the far left of that same picture - educated , M. Thomas Tchou. While the village may have influenced GMD dreams of modernizing slums, it is 27 Ibid. 28 Lipkin, Useless to the State , 117. 29 Industrial Work, Box 94, Miscellaneous reports, undated and 1923, 1935, Records of YMCA international work in China, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 198 also clear that militarism, nationalism, and youthful vigor valued by GMD officers helped to shape YMCA strategies as well. Figure 3.5: (Left) Healthy Baby (Middle) Young Man Flexing His Muscles, (Right) Leaders of the Health Campaign including M. Thomas Tchou. 30 Workers from the village also participated in labor safety training seminars and were tasked with conveying these safety practices to their workplaces to reduce factory accidents. Workers were also encouraged to join hiking groups to broaden their concepti on of China. 30 Ibid. 199 Christian Relief Work in China: The Interdenominational Melting Pot . Figure 3.6: YMCA Refugee Camp outside of Tianjin. 31 The dominance of Buddhism began to decline after a series of modernization campaigns which targeted Buddhist temples for conversion into modern schools. Its dominance was also shaken by the arrival of foreign missionaries in t he wake of the Second Opium War. Rev. Henry Blodget, from the American Congregational Church was the first of these Christian missionary to enter Tianjin in 1860 along with British troops that arrived in the port to enforce the newly ratified concession treaty. Within the next several decades, Christian influence in the city grew dramatically. 32 Much of the early Christian philanthropy in Tian jin took the form of medical aid. 33 By 1895 when the 31 The Tianjin Municipal Government often required refugees to be settled outside the city in temporary camps especially dur ing times of widespread famine or war. These camps were placed under the direction of specific charities. This image presents a YMCA Refugee Camp outside the Tianjin, YMCA/YWCA refugee resettlement, photo album, undated. Box 20 - AV. National Board of the Yo Associations Armed Services Department, Scraps and Photographs, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 32 Candlin, John Innocent , 73. 33 For a useful introduction of the importance of the medical field to e arly Protestant missions in China see: William Lockhart, The Medical Missionary in China: A Narrative of Twenty Years' Experience (London: 200 YMCA established their first branch in Tianjin, the city was home to numerous Christian hospitals, schools, and orphanages and a sizable number of Christian students who graduated from the mission school s. At the same time, Protestant missions across the globe were coming together in unprecedented ways that sought to overcome denominational difference. After the meeting of the World Missionary Conference (WMC) in Edinburgh, 1910, several societies formed among missionaries working in China to continue the China to encourage local meetings and organize a series of six regional and one national conference which discussed the past, present, and future of Protestant missionary work in China. This grew into the China Continuation Committee (CCC) which was reorganized and combined with other unifying organizations into the National Christian Council of China (NCC) in 1922. Th roughout the 1920s and 30s, the council represented about 70% of the Protestant missions in China. 34 These councils were critical in organizing and promoting disaster relief abroad and coordinating Christian charity efforts throughout the Republican Period . In many ways the YMCA was the poster child of NCC industrial policy, and its transferred authority of its local governing bodies from foreign leadership to a Chinese Hurst and Blackett, 1861): 150. For more on medical missions in Tianjin, see: Floyd L. Carr, John Kenneth Mackenzie: Beloved Physician of Tientsin (New York City: Baptist Board of Education, Department of Missionary Education, 1926). 34 For more on the NCC and CCC see the archival collections held in the Burke Library Archives, Columbia University Libraries, Union Theolo gical Seminary, New York, National Christian Council Records 1919 - 1950 and China Continuation Committee Records, 1912 - 1922. 201 major ity advising board by 1936, a longstanding goal of Protestant missions in Asia. 35 - governing, self - maintaining, self - perpetuating, and self - several of its initial charters. 36 The YMCA also narrowly focused the majority of its activities at attracting participation from the local elite through cultivating individual relationships. In 1902, after its original building was destroyed during the B oxer Uprising and the new headquarters were established in the French concession, YMCA missionaries in Tianjin aimed at encouraging the sons of Chinese gentry to join their consciousness and martial physical discipl ine resonated with many. Along with drawing on a local elite population, the Y also drew missionaries from a wide range of mission organizations to serve in their ranks and ensure no particular doctrinal issue usurped the primary purpose of their org anization. 37 1902 report, the membership of 133 in Tianjin was primarily foreign , with 25 Chinese attending the Sunday school and 35 Japanese attendants. Although comparatively small, the Y MCA began chants have shown in a very substantial way their appreciation of the work of this department by pledging $10,000 35 Ren Yunlan, Jindai Tianjin , 238. C. Peter Williams explains how self - governance of the indigenous church evolved as a policy in Protestant missions in his work: C. Peter Williams, The Ideal of the Self - Governing Church: A Study in Victorian Missionary Strategy (Leiden: E.J. Brill, 1990). 36 ional Work: An Inventory of Annual and Quarterly Reports of Work in China, 1896 - 1949, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 37 In 1911, Tianjin YMCA missionaries included members from the China Inland Mission, The Church Missionary Society, The United Free Church of Scotland, the English Baptist Mission, the Irish Presbyterian Church Mission, the Canadian Presbyterian Mission, th e American Presbyterians, and the - 31, YMCA International Work: An Inventory of Annual and Quarterly Reports of Work in China, 1896 - 194 9, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 202 38 By 1908, the Tianjin branch began to offer a wider range of educational programs like indust rial education. 39 In a little over five years, the membership of the Tianjin YMCA had grown exponentially with over 20,000 attendees to an athletic meeting in 1912. 40 By 1927, Tianjin Chinese YMCA membership included bank managers, doctors with overseas educ ation, compradors in charge of foreign mine holdings, engineers and technicians, professionals from export businesses, heads of insurance and stock market companies, university professors, low - level government officials and officers from the Guomindang. 41 The presence of the YMCA in Tianjin not only influenced how modern philanthropic work was understood in the city, but as demonstrated at the end of chapter one, the demands of famine work often equally shaped the organizations involved in providing reli ef. When A. G. Robinson, one of the founding leaders of the Tianjin YMCA, returned from the China field to New England in order to raise financial support in the U.S. for famine relief during the 1921 drought in North China, his usual networking activities were completely absorbed by the task of raising support. 42 It is 38 An Inventory of Annual and Quarterly Reports of Work in China, 1896 - 1949, Kautz F amily YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 39 of Work in China, 1896 - 1949, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 40 China, 1896 - 1949, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, Univers ity of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 41 Ren Yunlan, Jindai Tianjin , 240. 42 - 1924 (2 folders), Chinese Christian Student Association, YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of its Rec ords, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 203 Free primary schools and night classes were some of the consistent social work that the YMCA provided in the city. In training the children of the elite, the YMCA sought to raise social consciousness by encouraging students to volunteer their time teaching in private Christian schools, opening day and night classes for police and servants on campuses, carrying propaganda against opium and cigarette smoking to the surrounding villages and visiting the sick. 43 YMCA students in Tianjin also gathered ng that they are washed and kept clean, 44 Students, working with the Social Service League, a branch of the YMCA, also began to conduct surveys of rickshaw pullers in the city. In 1914, 300 students distributed ov er one hundred thousand fliers to raise awareness about pests like flies, mosquitoes and rats. Students went to street chapels and provided lectures on private and public hygiene. 45 The public heath campaigns were particularly influential among representat ives of the Tianjin Municipal Government. ded to any single denomination, it could often partner with other international aid agencies active in Tianjin that were not essentially 43 y Reports of Work in China, 1896 - 1949, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 44 Ibid., 40. 45 MCA International Work: An Inventory of Annual and Quarterly Reports of Work in China, 1896 - 1949, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 204 religious like the Red Cross Society of China and relief organizations of other faiths. 46 I n 1912, the Red Cross was encountering more refugees than it could shelter. Subsequently, the a ssociation began to help organize its own areas of refuge in the city. YMCA staff in Tianjin also played a leading role on the American Advisory Committee for Famine Relief during the famines that struck five provinces in North China in 1920. 47 During this particular famine, the Advisory Committee raised over seven million U.S. dollars by 1921 to aid refugees . The Tia njin Y MCA held classes on first aid to help equip student volunteers who often participated in dangerous efforts to relieve suffering soldiers. Association , pinerhui . These festivals included public speeches, Chinese music, ventriloquists, harmonica music, folk art and local comedy performances as well as other fun activities in order to educate the poor children through entertainment. They als o distributed corn noodles and other small gifts. At the end of 1934 to the beginning of 1935, more than 2400 people participated in two pinerhui events. 48 Sometimes the banquets invited poor children to eat many delicious foods that enjoy. Children also received free soaps, towels, and candies. This type of activity provided temporary encouragement to those children who lived on begging and picking up coal. The piner banquet in 1937 lasted for three days and more 46 ing Sept. 30, China, 1896 - 1949, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 47 its Records, 1890 - 1991, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 48 Ren Yunlan, J indai Tianjin, 240. 205 than 300 people pa rticipated. 49 Along with aiding the poor children of Tianjin, the Poor of young rich Chinese children. Towards a More Christian Industrial Order in China . ained more greed; 50 As previously stated, establishing ethical industrial behavior was at the core of Guomindang social welfare policy in the 1930s. 51 Unwilling to accept communist solutions, industrial policy was open to numerous interpretations . Christian leaders were sensitive to the potential of gaining influence by helping to stabilize labor relations. Advoca ting for the fair treatment of labor became a significant agenda for the NCC which devoted much of its publishing efforts to exhorting Christian organizations throughout China to encourage standardization of labor safety regulations and the legal protectio eventually make their way into the language of Guomindang labor policies, even if they were never effectively enforced by local governments. The members of the NCC included man 52 49 Ibid. 50 Christian Advocate (March 15, 1923): 327. 51 Henry Coffin lays out a clear representation of this idea of a Christian industrial order in this work. Much of the industrial policies f ormed by the NCC reflect his concerns and ideals, see: Henry Sloane Coffin, A More Christian Industrial Order (New York: Macmillan, 1920). 52 Council of Chi na, 23 Yuen Ming Yuen Road, Shanghai, Box 94, Industrial Work, Industrial reconstruction pamphlet series, nos. 1 - 4 undated and 1924, YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of its Records, 1890 - 1991, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minneso ta, Minneapolis. 206 Generally speaking, the recommendations of the council focused on safety conditions found in factories own by Christian employers. These regulations included limiting the number of hours each empl oyee should work and eliminating child labor. The council also recommended and organized case studies into the cost of living in numerous cities. These informal sociologists gathered statistics on the percentage of family budget spent on food and sought t o identify a universal standard of essential human need that could still be adapted to local economic situations. From these statistics, regional committees made recommendations on establishing a reasonable living wage. 53 The primary mechanism used by the NCC to influence policy changes was to utilize local newspapers to leverage both positive and negative public opinion. 54 employers of labor, a type of publicity which holds the m up to execration may block the way of advance, whereas a publicity which recognizes their good will (or possible good 55 I t is clear that the NCC was not necessarily outri ght hostile towards factory owners, but it did hold the threat of public ostracization as a tool for forceful change. Simultaneously, the council encouraged a program of education among church membership across the country that linked Christian faith to social service, emphasized a 53 Ibid. 54 Industrial Reconstruction Series , no. 2: 5. Box 94, Industrial Work, Industrial reconstruction pamphlet series, nos. 1 - 4 undated and 1924, YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of its Records, 1890 - 1991, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 55 pamphlet series, nos. 1 - 4 undated and 1924, YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of its Records, 1890 - 1991, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 207 brotherhood of believers which transcended class distinctions, and sought to secure unity of message towards specific labor issues. 56 Along with advocating for local churches to participate in Chinese labor reform, the council r ecommended establishing social centers in cities to serve as meeting places for worker employer arbitration. The Tianjin YMCA, although minor in terms of membership, served as an important host to many high - level meetings on labor relations and disaster re sponse. While Christian leaders understood that philanthropic work could provide a valuable means for propagating their faith, they were also sensitive to recognize that such work could be potentially appropriated to prolong the legitimacy of exploitive la bor practices by alleviating some of the social and physical should regard it as a prime duty to see that a social center does not degenerate into putting a piece of plas ter on the sore, but that the workers always keep before them the great task of the Church to lead men to desire and work for a social order which 57 For example, a factor y visited by Christian doctors on a regular basis may actually be less inclined to provide for the health of its workers. Consequently, Chinese Christian leaders sought to open their own experimental factories and villages that would exhibit its ideals an d utilize experts from the church to create sustainable communities for workers. Under the aegis of NCC policies, the Protestant pulpit in China communicated values of the 56 Ibid. 57 pamphlet series, nos. 1 - 4 undated and 1924, YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of its Rec ords, 1890 - 1991, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 208 integrity of facts and agitated against evil practices like child labor only throug h peaceful means. 58 Concerns for the practical implementation of Christian principles to the problems of social welfare were among the most critical topics confronting missionaries in China during the 1920s. 59 To highlight the positive effects Christian in dustrial theory could have on the welfare of workers, many articles appeared in local newspapers and Christian journals describing the improvements. In one such case , a Chinese tannery run by a local Christian was described in an article appearing in the C hristian Advocate: T he conditions here are said to be the best of all the smaller factories in the city. The usual 16 hour work a day is reduced by this Christian to ten. Men and boys earn from 5.50 to 8.50 a month. Apprentices sleep in a loft above th e shop, and in addition to their food and clothes, receive thirty - five cents a month during the first year. The second year they are paid a dollar a month and the third year nearly 4.00 a month or 13 cents a day. The industrial department of the YMCA wa s permitted to put on a program of welfare work, athletics and games for the workers. It was most touching to see the faces of these boys light up with gratitude when they saw the industrial secretary of the YMCA enter the shop. He knows them personally and is bringing a ray of light into the hearts of hundreds of these weary little toilers. 60 This above article combines several important elements. Rather than strictly decry the employment of young workers, it emphasizes their humane treatment and clearly p resents 58 Ibid. 59 The Chinese Social and Political Science Review, (October 1923). Box 94, Industrial Work, Miscellaneous reports, undated and 1923, 1935, YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of its Records, 1890 - 1991, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 60 Sherwood Eddy was a national secretary of the YMCA and spent over 15 years working with students in Eighteen - The Christian Advocate (March 15, 1923): 327, Box 94, Industrial Work, Miscellaneous reports, undated and 1923, 1935, Y MCA International Work in China: An Inventory of its Records, 1890 - 1991, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 209 their work as valuable. A big part of improving working conditions , was also evoking a social response that emphasized the dignity of the laborer. The Christian service of the YMCA did not extend to treating sickness caused by physically hazardous conditions. The employer was held responsible for the working conditions , which in this situation were rather positive. Instead, the YMCA provided recreation. These activities are often presented as positive alternatives to the other ways that workers mi ght spend their free time such as smoking opium and gambling. The YMCA, and by extension the NCC, presented Christianity as a positive alternative to social evil and consequently in direct support of strengthening the Chinese nation. The Christian tannery , as a smaller factory, model of industry preserve the dignity of the worker, it also integrates Chinese tradition in a way that traditional methods of production are not at odds with Christian values and concerns. In this model of a Christian factory, Eddy noted a stark contrast to the large There are five hundred such weaving factories in Tientsin with an average of fifty boys working at looms in prosperous times. Even after learning their trade, unless the workers can turn out more than three pieces of cloth a day, each eighteen feet in length, they receive no pay whatever. The dark hovels in which th ey work often affect their eyes until many are suffering and some can scarcely see. There are no labor unions here and no man dares to strike. If he drops out of his work he knows he will face starvation, for there is a hungry multitude waiting to take hi s place. 61 61 - The Christian Advocate (March 15, 1923): 327 - 28, Box 94, Industrial Work, Miscellaneous reports, undated and 1923, 1935, YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of its Records, 1890 - 1991, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 210 Christian missionaries in China clearly saw the U.S. as having a superior system of labor relations rather than the condition s in China, however , Eddy was quick to point out the es is often below a fair living standard, and the twelve - hour day is inhuman whether it is in the East or in the 62 Miss W. T. Zung (Cheng Wanzhen), who was a member of the YWCA National Committee in Shanghai and served as the China YWCA representati ve to the Industrial working conditions and argued that Marxist principles were not antithetical to Christian social reform. 63 Starting in the early 1920s, debate over the merits of communism intensified among Chinese Christian leaders . Zung argued that collective bargaining and strikes were natural responses to worker exploitation and the rising cost of living. She labored for constitutional reform that would mandate government i nspection of factory conditions and set standards regarding ventilation, safety, sanitation, and temperatures permitted. 64 The YMCA National Committee also advocated for the strict prohibition of white phosphorus to manufacture matches, and the unfair treat ment of female and child They (women) are there in great demand because of the low wages they 62 I bid . 63 The Weekly Review of the Far East (March 18, 1922): 119, Box 94, Industrial Work, Miscellaneous reports, undated and 1923, 1935, YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of its Records, 1890 - 1991, Kautz F amily YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 64 The Chinese Social and Political Science Review (October 1923): 5, Box 94, Industrial Work, Miscellaneous reports, undated and 1923, 1935, YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of its Records, 1890 - 1991, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 211 a wo man we find the woman there. And in turn if a woman can be replaced by a child in ninety nine out of a hundred the child is found there. Thus the majority of the workers in cotton and silk factories in Shanghai are women and on account of the extreme pover ty and famine in the north, thousands of young children are found in Tientsin cotton mills working on what is called the apprentice system. The system means that no regular wage is required to be paid to the apprentices. As long as there is no provision fo r protecting the women and children from being exploited, the standard of wages will be kept low. 65 were appointed by the Shanghai Municipal Council to form a Child Labor Com mission. Although its primary reach was the foreign businesses working in the concessions, these labor reforms set an important precedent for the amendments enacted by the central government. The YMCA in Tianjin followed this emphasis by establishing its own department for industrial service that sought to perform accurate studies of the conditions in specific industries and move public opinion towards increased regulation. 66 The National Christian Conference, held in Shanghai May 1922, identified four major problems with industrialization in China that the church would need to collectively respond . These included: (1) the growth of population density in cities and a consequent decrease of living conditions among workers, (2) unreasonably long hours working in overheated factory conditions that severely impaired worker health, (3) the particularly heavy burdens of labor on children, young people, and women , and (4) the growth an d expansion of factory workers who tend to become separated from the owning of property leading to class war. 67 Besides decrying this as a system of exploitation and inequality, 65 Ibid., 6 - 7. 66 Ibid., 8 - 9. 212 Chinese Christian leaders saw their engagement with labor policy as also protec ting the integrity of Chinese national sovereignty. I will discuss the role of Chinese Christian patriotism later in this chapter when we turn to discussion of the activities of the YMCA during the Second Sino - Japanese War. During the same conference, the NCC established a standing committee on industrial and social relations which sought, through unity, to express the collective concerns of Chinese Christians regarding specific social problems. 68 This agenda of promoting social welfare was not immediat ely recognized by all Protestant leaders and eventually led two of the earliest and well - respected Protestant missionary orders, the China Inland Mission and the Christian and Missionary Alliance, to part with the council in 1926. The council rationalized its social welfare policies through four principles: (1) that just as Jesus Christ devoted much of His strength to helping people physically, the church must be collectively devoted to the physical, mental, and moral development of the people; (2) physica l conditions of industrial labor in China threaten the moral and spiritual welfare of the Chinese people, (3) the church in China is responsible for the welfare of the nation and must seek Christian solutions to the grave problems the nation faced, and (4) the church must seek to overcome evil wherever it appears and establish the reign of righteousness. These specific motivations are important for understanding how Chinese Christian leaders and their foreign missionary counterparts interpreted the aims of social work. 67 hai (1923): 1, Box 94, Industrial Work, Miscellaneous reports, undated and 1923, 1935, YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of its Records, 1890 - 1991, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 68 Ibid., 2. 213 The 1189 delegates present at the first National Christian Conference nearly unanimously agreed to encourage church members to actively research economic and industrial problems in China while identifying solutions proven to work in the West , adopt the labor standards approved by the League of Nations, and advocate against child labor, one day rest in seven, safeguard worker health, limit working hours, improve sanitation, and install safety equipment in factories. 69 Local churches began respo nding to these objectives by collecting statistics on family budgets, conducting in - depth investigations of specific industries , researching the background of strikes, and publishing articles in Chinese and English newspapers against child labor. Rather traditional system and shifted blame to the destructive aspects of industrialism. 70 These Christi supported by a relatively mutually supportive system of small cottage industry. Modern industry, then, was a corrupting force which created the deplorable working condition s now present in Chinese factories and invaded and profaned the relationship between worker and employer. Notions of Christian equality permeate arguments made by the ar e contrary to such standards of justice and humanity as we demand for our own lives. And secondly to examine our own relationships to all whom we employ in our house or 69 Ibid., 4. 70 Industrial Reconstruction Series, no. 3 (1924), Box 94, Industrial Work, Industrial reconstruction pamphlet series, nos. 1 - 4 undated and 1924, YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of its Records, 1890 - 1991, Kaut z Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 214 school or workshop and see whether we are upholding the standard which the church has s 71 This statement was both a self - criticism of the church and also of all foreigners staying in China. Sherwood Eddy was even more straightforward in his criticism of - loving foreig ner must yield to the more normal standard of American home life and working 72 Nevertheless, Eddy also targeted system of exploitation: It is true that conditions are perhaps more dangerous to the life and health of the workers in factories with modern machinery, but conditions in the home and in small workshops are also contrary to the principles of humanity and justice: servants working from five or six to late at night, small boys apprenticed to trades under conditions almost equivalent to slavery and women working in such a way as to endanger not only their own health but the lives of their offspring. 73 new a day of twelve hours, the maximum being sixteen: women and children on night shifts; no minimum age, and in consequence children of five or six or seven working all day or all ni ght; no care of women before or after childbirth; no safeguarding of the health of the workers. We find that everywhere the most modern machinery is being introduced such as the W estern countries have only know n for a few years, but everywhere the most ant 74 71 Ibid. 72 Ibid. 73 Ibid., 2. 74 Ibid., 4. 215 From Tianjin to Hong Kong, the NCC organized local industrial commissions, often under the leadership of the local YMCA and also pressured Chinese Christian colleges to pay more attention to training social workers. This continued pressure among the Chinese Christian community did achieve some results. The NCC organized medical care for workers and educational facilities for their children. In Chefoo (modern day Yantai), Christian employers began providing S undays off , and in Shanghai the NCC organized nurseries for some mill workers. 75 Another important service the Christian Council provided for Chinese labor was continuous appeals for oversight. Although labor reform policies sounded good on paper, for the most part, there was no plan for implementation or enforcement. On March 29 , 1923, the ministry of agriculture and commerce published factory legislation for temporary applicat ion. These regulations were applied both to Chinese and foreign industry, focused on child labor (section 4), set regulations on working time to an eight - hour work day for minors and ten - hour day for adults. Employers were encouraged to give workers at lea st two days rest every month and rest periods throughout the day which stipulated how workers should be paid. However, in reality, few of these measures were ever successfully implemented. Since there was little incentive for businesses to comply with su ch regulations, it was up to philanthropic organizations to campaign for public pressure to meet the demands of labor. The YMCA pressured foreign business leaders to adopt pledges to follow Christian practices in the treatment of workers. Allied Christian organizations 75 savings banks, and pension schemes were among some of the other improvements the industrial committees sought to implement. 216 safeguards for workers such as limited hours, improved sanitary conditi ons, and the installment of safety devices. 76 In 1923, the Tianjin YMCA joined branches across China in refusing to provide welfare in factories which continued to press laborers into long extended hours. After the Japanese invasion on July 7 th 1937, much of the publication efforts of the NCC were redirected towards advocating patriotism and caring for the needs of a society at war. The efforts to improve working conditions were largely shelved as a priority to be reawakened by Henry D. Jones (1918 - 1987) wh o temporarily joined the NCC staff from 1947 - 1950 after working with the Detroit Labor Movement for 13 years. 77 Jones helped to establish the industrial mission as a ministry field in China. By 1947, the NCC was almost entirely composed of native Christian s rather than foreign missionaries and the council would remain active until it was displaced by the Three - Self period were significantly limited, the industrial committee reported negotiating favorable terms for workers in Christian hospitals and the continued work of the YMCA and YWCA in the 78 76 In dustrial Reconstruction Series 3 , (1924): 1, Box 94, Industrial Work, Industrial reconstruction pamphlet series, nos. 1 - 4 undated and 1924, YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of its Records, 1890 - 1991, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 77 The Henry David Jones Collection, 1950s - 1970s Papers are held at the Bentley Historical Library, University of Michigan, Ann Arbor. 78 vice in Industrial Relations of N.C.C. in China 1948 - 217 In 1949, the committee distributed several publications that foreshadow the changes that would be later enforc ed through the PRC: a pamphlet titled : for the self - reliance of Chinese churches by creating cooperatives. Another series detailed how Christian hospitals could extend free medical care to workers by creating cooperative insurance plans and opening special labor hospitals that cared exclusively for workers and their families. The publications department also announced a series of titles on Christianity, labor and poetry about Jesus by communist authors. Additionally, the NCC arranged for students to spend time working in factories to study the daily life, habits and thinking of workers. Fourteen students from the North China and Central China Theological Seminaries wer e recruited for this program. Along with laboring alongside factory workers, the seminarians taught workers to sing and read and visited labor welfare institutions. In the second half of 1950, the NCC Industrial Committee set an agenda to direct Christian in order to mutual aid projects, distribute literature on forming cooperatives to eliminate exploitation, promote industrial evangelism, sponsor programs for worker recreation, provide daycare, and economic relief. 79 undated and 1923, 1935, YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of its Records, 1890 - 1991, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesot a, Minneapolis. 79 Christian Service in Industrial Relations of N.C.C. in China 1948 - - 2 to 651 - 3, Box 94, Industrial Work, Miscellaneous reports, undated and 1923, 1935, YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of its Records, 1890 - 1991, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 218 YMCA Labor Investigations . The YMCA was particularly active in responding to the NCC charge for Christians to conduct their own investigations into labor. The vice president of the Christian college in Guandong, Lingnan University, Y. L. Lee conducted one of these first surveys and published his findings to the YMCA National Committee. 80 His study sought to consider the major issues confronting labor in China. From 1925 - 1926, he sent surveys to union leaders, which were largely influenced by the Communist Party. Although only 180 of the unions of the 250 he solicited responded, this port ion represented a sizable three hundred thousand workers. His findings on the labor movement in the city were largely positive, arguing that it had improved the lives of workers and lifted them up not only financially but increased their social status and preserved their human dignity. Along with becoming better educated, the workers in the labor unions were also more patriotic , although Lee was more critical of the Communist ons alone to allow workers to lead the unions themselves. 81 Although a strong advocate of the labor movement, the YMCA investigations met with resistance from both factory owners e most 80 University, Acting General Secretary of Canton YMCA. Box 94, Industrial Work, Miscellaneous reports, undated and 1923, 1935, YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of its Records, 1890 - 1991, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Min neapolis. Wang Dong discusses the progressive influence of Lingnan University in his work: Wang Dong, - China Cultural Encounter and Canton Christian College (Lingnan University) 1888 - Books , 2007). 81 Canton YMCA, 2, Box 94, Industrial Work, Miscellaneous reports, undated and 1923, 1935, YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of it s Records, 1890 - 1991, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 219 extensive investigations conducted by YMCA staff, numerous individual pastors and YMCA members also published their own reports as well. For example, Kenneth Duncan , who served as a missionary at Canton Christian College, saw his work with labor as fundamental to advancing the Christian message in China: It has often been observed that the Christian Church has an extraordinary opportunity in connection with the problem of the industrialization of China. If by its efforts the Church can anticipate t he coming of the industrial order in this country provide those safeguards that will insure to the masses of workers just treatment and fair working conditions, and by its organized effort and the influence of its members humanize industry and foster relat ionships of brotherhood, cooperation, mutual respect and happiness, it will be a splendid achievement in Christian service rivaling in importance any other activity the Church can undertake. The Church has an opportunity, and indeed a responsibility, in t aking the initiative in the intelligent study and solution of the labor problem that should challenge its finest talents, its broadest sympathies, and its most generous efforts. 82 He clearly felt the church was positioned to spare China from the grueling history of labor exploitation that was experienced in Europe and its morally degenerative consequences , and that it should not only take the lead in arousing and enlightening public opinion, but also in shaping public policy to ensure enforcement of exist ing laws. 83 The conclus a Christian pastoral idealism. When loss of fresh air and the freedom of country life to the rush and conges tion of the factory 82 Ibid. 83 - 4. Box 94, Industrial Work, Miscellaneous reports, undated and 1923, 1935, YMCA International Wor k in China: An Inventory of its Records, 1890 - 1991, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 220 European industrialization is deconstructed into a system of poverty creation. In a report from the city of Wuhan, Charles C. Shedd argues that th e exploitation of labor leads men to become a parasitic class: The regrettable thing is that modern industry seems to carry an accompanying increase of poverty, at least poverty is here see in its more objectionable phases. Closely related also are a grea ter insecurity of work, wage earners instead of home keepers. Many men are therefore being pushed out by the lower paid women and children; some of whom take this chance to go into more remun erative occupations, while others see in it a chance to loaf allowing the wives and daughters to support the family, the percentage of men in this parasitic class being alarmingly high. 84 se male labor, he places responsibility for this degeneracy on the system of industry. J. W. Nipps, who served as secretary of the Tianjin YMCA, wrote a report on the city of Yantai, which was a popular camping spot for the Tianjin Boy Scouts. His survey of several factories that produced hairnets and lace argued that female labor was a positive influence on individual well - being and improved the overall social status and freedom of women in the city. As an example of how this freedom was expressed, he me ntioned that working women in Yantai were more likely to get divorced or break marriage arrangements. Nipps concludes his report by arguing that the system of European industrialization is a corrupt system at its core and the only way to create something d ifferent in China would be to reject at least some of the fundamental principles of that system. 85 84 - YMCA International Work: An I nventory of Annual and Quarterly Reports of work in China, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 85 Annual and Quarterly Reports of work in China, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 221 Thomas Tchou who was also the head of the Pudong, Shanghai model village images 86 Tchou argued that the urban migration caused by the factories created overcrowding that was unprecedented in Chinese history even during times of great famine. The following image on the left shows the mai n entrance of right shows the houses inside the compound, some made of the hulls of old boats and also surrounded by cesspools of standing water. Figure 3.7: (Left) Disease Laden Water (Right) Shelters with More Stagnant Water. 87 According to his report, the average worker in Shanghai in 1925 spent no more than 2 yuan on housing per month, though many spent less than 1 yuan. The highest quality housing among underground ditches for drainage, access to outdoor public toilets, some basic infrastructure including gas or electric lamps and one water tap for a row of 86 20 Museum Road, Shanghai, China, May 1926, Box 94, Miscellaneous reports, undated and 1923, 1935, Industrial work. all images below are from his report. 87 Ibid., 4. 222 houses. Although these homes are four to six hundre d square feet, they were usually 6 to 9 yuan per month, making it necessary for two to four families to live together with an average of seven members per family. The odor combined with the noise of so many people living in such a small space meant that m ost of the residents were impatient and unhappy. Tchou also pointed out the complete lack of education that would help young people better their situation was absent. The second level of poor housing was distinguished by its even dirtier conditions, disre pair and unsafe construction which often resulted in collapse. The worse housing were the dormitories that offered nothing more than a bed to a single male for a rate of 30 - 80 cents a month. 88 YMCA reports would often emphasize the need for recreation time in forming national citizens and instilling the collective morality that industrialization seemed to destroy. The images below show temporary housing that was used by poor workers in Shanghai. The image in the first line on the right is an old boat that housed a family of nine. The second row shows two images of a hut that cost about 20 yuan to build. 88 Ibid., 4 - 5. 223 Figure 3.8: (Top Left) Temporary Housing used by Workers in Shanghai (Top Bottom Right) Fragile Huts made from Mud and Grasses. 89 Tchou identified overcrowding as the most significant problem for the working class and saw all other social betterment programs from education to recreation as necessary but ultimately secondary. 90 Tchou described the migrant laborers in very positive terms. The several hundred thousand Northerners who came to Shanghai were: livelihood. Having no patrimony and no relatives who c an help, they come to the city unbefriended by the native people and are subjected to the worst of hardships in making a living. Being driven often by disillusion and hunger, they are willing to do the most menial work for very low wages. So they have beco me the beasts of burden of a toiling community. Their income is so small and the cost of living is so much higher here than where they come from, that they cannot as a rule afford to pay the rent in 89 Ibid., 6 - 7. 90 Ibid., 8. 224 any of the houses described above. So they are obliged to choose between the open air and mud huts to be built by themselves. As a result, Shanghai is now surrounded by a dotted chain of mud hut colonies which are readily visible to anyone who travels about the outskirts. 91 Tchou also described the process of g entrification which drove poor tenants out of their homes. After migrant workers would rent empty lots, they would build huts and drive up the property cost. Then the landlords would evict tenants and resell the land to richer families. These huts usually had no windows, and were extremely frail to the elements. Although these migrant worker communities were the most destitute, located on the literal periphery of the city, they were almost completely untouched by any kind of social welfare. They lacked a ll public utilities, had no access to medical service and no access to clean water or garbage disposal. The YMCA was especially critical of the international municipal police who occasionally burned down these mud huts because they violated local buildin g regulations. After burning several hundred huts down, a number of labor organizations foreign officials of the settlement and Chinese officials by the General Labor Un ion, the Shanghai Students Union, the Street Unions and a relief committee. Much publicity was went al credit to the authenticity of his findings, he mentioned his own contraction of granular conjunctivitis while conducting the research and ended es should be what they 91 Ibid., 10. 225 are; does it mean that when China becomes more and more industrialized the whole nation will eventually be transformed into a big slum; shall society continue its callousness and indifference; what is the new social order going to be 92 War Relief, Patriotism, and Solidarity . While some missionaries may have sought to remain neutral in response to the Japanese invasion of China, the preponderance of Christian organizations in China and Chinese Christian student associations abroad ex pressed a profound sense of indignation most stupid way of promoting trade relations w 93 YMCA missionaries helped to shape public opinion on the Japanese occupation of Manchuria both in China and abroad. Sherwood Eddy sent eyewitness cables to be published in the New York Herald Tribune after the invasion of Manchuria: I was present at the capture of Mukden. Evidence of many witnesses interviewed at time and on spot points to premeditated, carefully prepared offensive plan of Japan army without provocation of any Chinese attack, producing bitter resentment when China suffering with flood disaster and world preoccupied. Japanese troops not withdrawn, but all strategic points southern Manchuria still held by Japanese and Chinchow bombed. I testify to evidence of efforts to establish puppet independent government in Manchuria und er Japanese military control. I have forwarded sworn statements of interviews with Chinese leaders in Manchuria who testify to repeated pressure of Japanese to induce them to head independent governments. 92 Ibid., 17. 93 this was a special article published though the Chinese Christian Student , part of the Chinese Student Christian Association, 347 Madison Avenue, New York City, Y. E. Hsia o general secretary. 226 Similar condemnations came from YMCA leadership a fter the Shanghai War roughly four months later. 94 In response to the more than 165,000 refugees created by the conflict, ninety - two camps were opened in every available building in the international settlement and French c oncession. The YMCA, YWCA, and chu rches all opened their doors. The YMCA buildings alone housed over 5000 refugees, not including those in the camps. 95 T he YMCA and YWCA secretaries, working alongside members of the Salvation Army and Shanghai Rotary Club, ran the refugee camps. YMCA Boy Scouts helped by security and discipline: With such a large family disciplinary measures are sometimes necessary. In the Continental Bank there is a bench on which men and boys who have disobeyed the rules must stand to be seen of all. Women and children must stand on the floor beside them with their faces to the wall. One man was caught stealing. A peaked cap was stuck on his head and he was escorted all over the buildi ng, upstairs and down, by the scouts who announced to all in Chinese and English This man is a thief. 96 The YMCA refugee camps encouraged residents to attend classes for studying Chinese, and making some of the supplies needed by the hospitals attending to wounded soldiers. Training refugees in various job skills was seen as a necessary step towards economic children to help farmers rebuild their homes after they were destro yed, and to sow the 94 printed material, undated and 1918 - 1940 (3 folders), YMCA International Work: An Inventory of Annual and Quarterly Reports of work i n China, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 95 Ibid., 5. 96 Ibid., 15. 227 A monthly YMCA magazine published in Guangzhou captured much of the patriotic enthusiasm that merged with the YMCA mission after the beginning of the war. The Guangzhou branch called for everyone to stand up for the survival of the country, and unify for justice. Wu Tiecheng, a local member, argued that war must be fought by members wanted to greatly expand membership and non - mem ber participation in the activities it hosted to educate and train society to mobilize for war. One article entitled , served yourself. The branch emphasized many nationalist ideas that replicated parts of The Three Principles of the People , Sanmin Zhuyi ( ) . They claimed to teach morality, build up individual character, cultivate a scientific brain, encourage a life of physical exercise and to develop a healthy community. As part of this initiative to mobilize Chinese citizens, the YMCA established a Committee for Working through Hardship, guonan gongzuo hui (GNH) which organized all Christian churches to cultiva te patriotism and provide support to the military. For example, the GNH organized collection drives to comfort army soldiers and campaigns to sell government war bonds. In three months they claimed to have raised over 1.3 million yuan. YMCA staff was als o put in charge of several government refugee shelters in the area. The Guangzhou members wanted to make clear that their work was not confined to propagating their religious message, but that they had done much to promote the current needs of the Chinese people and embodied the Cantonese revolutionary fighting spirit. 228 As mentioned earlier, Wu Tiecheng noted several ways that the YMCA was working towards national salvation. The first of these was the use of YMCA printing facilities and for members to dis tribute thousands of fliers and books on the topic of promotion of public health, the Y was experienced in promoting and setting up lectures. During the war, the association set up lectures with models of goods produced in Japan and Chinese market equivalents. 97 Meetings also featured famous scholars to discuss the influence. Rather than singing Chr istian hymns, they organized affiliated church members to compose and sing patriotic songs in public and utilized their movie and slide show equipment to hold public viewings of patriotic films and drama, huaju . Training programs included organizing emerge ncy medical teams to help victims after aerial bombardment and how to guard against poison gas. The YMCA even hosted mass training sessions for teaching civilians to use swords. Much of their work centered on bringing encouragement to soldiers. They orga nized groups of civilians to make trips to the front to distribute medicine, extra clothing and other gifts to encourage morale. In Guangzhou alone, the YMCA organized thirty more schools to aid wartime children and worked alongside the Guangzhou Red Cross to manage shelters and educate refugees. After the war with Japan became total , the China YMCA remained active not only in free China where it became a growing force for nationalism but also in occupied cities where, until 1941, foreign concessions prov ided some measure of protection to relief 97 Donald Jordon has shown how effective Chinese boycotts could be at damaging the Japanese economy in Donald A. Jordan, Chinese Boycotts versus Japanese B ombs: The Failure of China's "Revolutionary Diplomacy, 1931 - (Ann Arbor: University of Michigan Press, 1991). 229 agencies. Years before the U.S. entered the war against Japan, the YMCA promoted Christian organizations in China were feel endeavors in China. 98 A report issued in 1939 described the tremendous cost that Japanese occupation had on the Christian effort in China: land. interrupted in July 1937. Thirty to forty million refugees have suffered untold privations and hardships. The loss of civilian lives has been stupendous. The advancing invaders have brou ght havoc and destruction total of 34 Christian hospitals since the outbreak of hostilities. 99 responded to global appeals for emergency help. For example, Dr. J Usang Ly, the president of Chiaotung University and a member of the NCC and YMCA in Shanghai and Kiangsu sent around 1000 yuan to the Czechoslovakian YMCA for emergency relief. The YMCA a lso supported yearly nationwide fundraising events to gather contributions to assist wounded soldiers: Money Raised by YMCAs in 1938 for Soldier Relief City Goal Actual Peiping 10,000 11,000 Tientsin 10,000 17,462.50 Shanghai 50,000 56,000 Ningpo 3,000 3,300 Table 3.1 : YMCA 1938 Soldier Relief Fund . 100 98 China, 131 Museum Road, Shanghai. Box 95 , YMCA Emergency Service to Soldiers in China, 1939, YMCA International Work: An Inventory of Annual and Quarterly Reports of work in China, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 99 Ibid., 1. 100 Ibid., 12. 230 Table 3.1 : ( Hongkong 20,000 21,000 Canton 15,000 40,000 Changsha 20,000 22,000 Hangkow 50,000 52,000 Sian 0 5000 Kunming 0 0 (Yunnanfu) 10,000 10,713.00 Total 188,000 238,476 The China YMCA also received large cash donations from the central government, Hong Kong and overseas Chinese for their work with soldiers. While the members of the YMCA only represented a small fraction of the population, their members often held immense p olitical and social importance. Their well - known experience in managing disaster relief meant that their staff were in high demand throughout the first half of the twentieth century by Nationalist government officials working with providing emergency relie f. 101 The Second World War in China also encouraged self - reflection among YMCA missionaries. Not only did the atrocities of war shake the faith of Chinese Christian youth in a just God, they also questioned the leadership of Christian democracies which were toppled by Japanese militarism. As part of its war relief campaign, the YMCA also sought to raise money to help students displaced by the war. By March 31 st 1939 they had raised 185,795 yuan which was allocated to a joint YMCA / YWCA project, the Nationa l Student Relief Committee. This wartime work with underprivileged children and the children of refugees continued public and private universities. 101 For example, General Zhang Zhizhong requested that Chang I - fan, the secretary of the Changsha YMCA head a disaster relief program entirely financed by the government for Hunan Province in 1939, - 15. 231 As mentioned earlier, several members were the presidents of these colleges. It is important to note, f or example, Zhang Boling, the founder of Nankai University, also served as president of the Tianjin YMCA. Below are two images of the schools set up by the YMCA war relief work in Shanghai. Once again, images focus both on classroom discipline and physical training. 102 Figure 3.9: (Left) YMCA War Relief Classroom Training (Right) YMCA Physical Training. 103 The Tianjin YMCA, even under occupation, also remained active at organizing and providing relief during the war. A report from a branch in the city described the growing problems North China faced with thousands of innocent people lacking basic food, clothing, or ho using. In 1937, the NCC established the National Christian Council War Relief Committee (NCCWRC) which aimed to do large scale relief to cope with the unprecedented suffering and displacement caused by the invasion. The branch of the NCCWRC in Tianjin was composed of members of the local churches, the YMCA and YWCA. 104 102 Ibid., 17. 103 Ibid., 18. 104 National Christian War Relief Committee (Tientsin Branch), Report Part 1, Office YMCA, 60 Rue de Paris, Tientsin, China, Telephone 31043, June 30, 1939, Box 95, YMCA Emergency Service to Soldiers in 232 In the fall of 1939, the Tianjin NCCWRA began relief work in 17 counties including Tianjin with an initial budget of 55,000 yuan. More than 13,000 was raised locally in Tianjin, 30,000 came from the North China Committee on Coordination of Emergency Relief; 8436.44 was provided by the Three Service Clubs Fund of Tientsin and 2402.90 was already in hand. The majority of this fund went to relieve refugees who were living in the rural area s around Tianjin. 105 The following two charts on the next pages show the origin of the money colle cted and how it was distributed; both come from the Tianjin NCCWRC report: Fundraising for NCCWRC Tianjin Branch North C hina Coordination Committee 27000 British Fund for Relief 3000 Service Clubs Fund 8436.44 YMCA 2682.94 YWCA 2545.73 Wesley Church 1342.9 Taku Road Christian Church & TACC 1463.34 English Methodist Church 374.5 Tung Ma Lu English Methodist Church 107 Hopei Kung Li Hui 304.82 Ts'ang Men K'uo Chinese Christian Church 237.14 Tientsin Church of England Fund 180.4 Nan Men Wai MEM 171.1 San I Chuang MEM 130.97 His Men Li MEM 81.4 Kuo Lou Hsi Chinese Christian Church 129 Chung Hua Sheng Kung Hui 339.43 Table 3.2 : Fundraising for NCCWRC Tianjin Branch . 106 China, 1939, YMCA International Work: An Inventory of An nual and Quarterly Reports of work in China, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 105 Ibid. 106 Report of the Tientsin Chinese Committee: United War Work Campaign, November 11 - 18, 1918, ( 1919): 14. Box 94, YMCA International Work: An Inventory of Annual and Quarterly Reports of work in China, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 233 Table 3.2 Tientsin Union Church 103.57 Kung Hsueh Students 992.08 Kuang Tung School 628.02 P'ei Ts'ai School 569.2 Chiu Chen & Yang Shan Schools 536 Huei Wen Academy 152.8 Keen School Students 96.5 Keen School Faculty 53.5 Individual Subscriptions 1461.2 Balance from Mr. Henderson 4402.9 Less amount paid out to Pastor Li - 2000 55522.88 Advanced from North China Coordination Committee 477.12 Total 56000 The report from the NCCWRC in Tianjin included several pictures of their work along with a moralizing caption that rationalized their work with existing paradigms of self - reliance. The image below shows a refugee receiving seed grain 107 Figure 3.10: Refugees Receiving Seed Grain. 108 107 Ibid. 108 Ibid. 234 A strong sense of self - reliance is present in many of the captions in this year - end report To illustrate , the image below on the extreme left shows female refugees making padded winter clothes for other refu gees. The second image shows children returning home after a day of schooling and light industrial work. The third image, again emphasizing work with children, shows refugees pasting envelopes. Figure 3.11: Tianjin YMCA (Left) Refugees making Padded Winter Clothes, (Middle) Children Returning Home after Day School (Right) Refugee Children Working Pasting Envelopes. 109 The NCWRC in Tianjin also organized young boys into teams to shine shoes and purchased a small number of rickshaws to help healthy refug ees make a living. Figure 3.12: (Left and Middle) YMCA Organized Boys to Shine Shoes (Right) Rickshaws Purchased for Healthy Refugees to make a Living. 110 109 Ibid. 110 Ibid. 235 Sinicizing Western Charity . Along with international Christian associations like the YMCA, Tianjin was also host to numerous national and international charity agencies organized by Buddhist and other religious organizations. Pierre Fuller has argued that a lthough Buddhism did not have the same level of influence it once did, practitioners of t he religion found new ways 111 One interesting example was the various swastika societies active nationally since the 1920s. 112 The World Red Swastika Society 113 originated from several leadi ng members of a syncretic 114 It quickly spread across China and to Japan and Korea as a powerful charity organization. 115 The Red Swastika Society found favor and official recognition as a charity through its established purposes for promoting ethics and encouraging philanthropy while attempting to blend moral components from Confucianism, 111 Pierre Fuller, "North China Famine Revisited: Unsung Native Relief in the Warlord Era, 1920 - 1921," Modern Asian Studies 47, no. 3 (2013): 820 - 850. 112 Currently, the scholarship on red and other swastika societies is still rather undeveloped. However, a di ssertation by a recent graduate student from Nankai University, Hou Yawei promises to provide the first comprehensive academic study of this religious charity organization. 113 The World Red Swastika Society continues to exist, with branches in Taiwan, Japa n and Singapore, see: http://www.twrss.org/ . 114 Li Guangwei F… [Republian Shandong Dao Yuan & World Red Swastika Society historical e 2008. 115 Duara describes the Red Swastika Society as part of the anti - Western movement in Asia towards a Pan - rse of Civilization and Pan - Journal of World History 12, no. 1 (Spring 2001): 111. However, Dr. Ren Yunlan argues that these societies were careful to profess an international spirit of community that was anti - political and focused on philanthro py. That the five religions these societies sought to unify included Christianity and Islam seems to lend credence to this view. Ren Yunlan, Jindai Tianjin , 231. 236 Buddhism, Taoism, Christianity, and Islam. 116 chairman in 1925. B y 1937, the Red Swastika Society claimed approximately seven to ten million followers. 117 Besides the more commonly known Red Swastika society, Yellow and Blue Swastika Societies were also active in Tianjin with largely the same Buddhist philosophical chara cteristics, but with a somewhat different specific relief focus. The Yellow Swastika Society originated from the very specific efforts of Wang swastika society movemen t was evidence of the internationalization of disaster relief in the early twentieth century that patterned other organizations like the Red Cross, YMCA, Salvation Army, and others. 118 Broadly speaking, these societies provided spiritual counsel, natural d isaster and war relief, education, and poverty alleviation. 119 Within China, their presence was quite significant. In the fifteen years between 1922 and 1937 they created 317 branches, conducted 84 disaster relief efforts for floods, war, and drought. They built 84 primary schools, 18 facilities for abandoned infants , yuyingtang , 4 poor work houses , xiyisuo , 5 orphanages , gueryuan , 3 workhouses for children, 2 institutes for caring for the disabled 116 Although it still exists in places like Japan and Taiwan, it has been driven from the Chine se mainland by the PRC policies against non - traditional religions. 117 Duara also cites several other studies which placed the number of members or followers between 30,000 118 Berliner Chinahefte/Chinese History and Society 43 (2013): 6 - 28. Also see: Mechthild Leutner and Izabella Goikhman, State, Society and Governance in Republican China (Berlin, Lit, 2014). 119 Liang Jiagui hongwanzihui li #~ : [Turbulent period of civil society organizations and relief: The case of the World Red Swastika Society during the Republican 237 canfeiyuan , 12 homes for caring for widows , xuliju , 14 clinics for helping poor women before and after they gave birth , xucanju , 3 poor factories , pinmin gongchang , 51 banks for lending to the poor daijisuo , 16 hospitals, 175 clinics, 11 vaccination clinics, and 39 places to provide coffins and burial expenses to the poor for a total of 343 organizations nationwide. 120 The first swastika society was established in Tianjin, in 1922, in the Japanese concession area. The work of the swastika societies can be divided into two categories, emergency relief and continu ous relief. Because of the turbulence and financial instability of the Republican Period, government relief organizations were insufficient in responding to the needs of refugees and urban poor and often needed to rely on organizations like these societies . The Tianjin swastika societies helped in times of disaster by setting up temporary soup kitchens to respond to refugees passing through or settling in Tianjin. These kitchens were especially important during the winter months when each year peasa nt beggars and unemployed farmers came to Tianjin looking for work and supplemental food. In 1929, the relief provided by the Red Swastika Society fed up to 3,000 people per day. 121 Not only did the Tianjin Red Swastika Society provide soup, they also raise d money to supply clothes and pass out grain. 122 In areas affected by famine and drought, the society distributed seed for planting in the villages around Tianjin and in the surrounding 120 Ren Yunlan, Jindai Tianjin , 231. 121 Hou Yawei ˙† [Save People, save Self, and save the World: The Origins and Cause of Shijie zongjiao wenhua , (March, 2012), 28. 122 Ibid., 27. 238 provinces. They also provided temporary hospitals for wounded soldiers and opened their own schools. The provisions they made for the disabled are a unique part of 123 Along with providing emergency relief measures to respond to the many crisis of the early Republican Period, the swastika soci eties also established permanent institutions for helping the poor and refugees in the city. The Tianjin Blue and Yellow Swastika Societies were particularly active in establishing schools in poor rural villages around Tianjin such as the #3 Branch School located in Xinmin Zhulin village. These schools not only provided free education, they also helped students obtain clothes 124 and coal for cooking and heating. 125 Although established as independent, private schools, the N ationalist government played an impor tant role in investigating and regulating what was taught, 126 each school providing yearly reports of faculty and student rosters. 127 The swastika societies also established retirement homes, help for widows, clinics and vaccination centers throughout Tianjin. City taxes went to support specific swastika society relief programs. During the war with Japan, the city helped to 123 In 1930, the canfeiyuan accommodated 50 residents, 16 in 1947 and 22 in 1948, see: Ren Yunlan, Jindai Tianjin , 231. 124 TMA, J0110 - 1 - 001703 - 001, 1946. Tianjin Municipal Archives [note on searching for documents related to the sw astika societies in the Tianjin archives although some of the documents related to the swastika societies are posted correctly in the catalogue under the majority can be found by searching using the Chinese character for ten thousand instead of ]. 125 TMA, J0025 - 3 - 006280 - 002, November 16, 1948. 126 TMA, J0110 - 3 - 000503 - 001, June 29, 1946. 127 TMA, J0110 - 3 - 000506 - 001, June 21, 1946. 239 supplement the costs of relief work through a tax on fish sales and by hosting charity drama performances. 128 During the Japanese occupatio n of Tianjin, the swastika societies remained active. For example, in 1940 they set up booths to sell tea and give out vaccinations. However, their position was often tenuous. All branches of the swastika societies were required to register their members hip and apply for passes to conduct relief work. In 1937, an incident involving a Blue Swastika Society soup kitchen drew the attention of the Japanese occupied city police. 129 Although claiming to be anti - political, in 1943 the Yellow Swastika Society did organize some projects to protect Chinese economic interests against the Japanese. 130 After the war with Japan, the swastika societies proved vital to assisting in the u to open a food distribution center and set up a transportation network for moving food into the city. 131 The swastika societies worked with the city government in the postwar period to bring running water and electricity to the refugee camps , nanmin xiuxiz han and were provided with special tax exemptions and rates to facilitate the relief effort. 132 Along with providing special subsidies, the city police department also provided extra 128 TMA, J0218 - 3 - 007341, 1940. Also see: TMA, J0001 - 3 - 010181 - 211, November 18, 1939. 129 TMA, J0218 - 3 - 004220, January 1937 . 130 TMA, J0128 - 2 - 002749, January 1943. The Yellow Swastika Society was very active in vocalizing anti - Japanese sentiment, this file from the Tianjin chamber of commerce describes their participation in boycotting Japanese goods. 131 TMA, J0025 - 3 - 001156 - 003, February 26, 1946. 132 TMA, J0025 - 3 - 006266 - 004, December 27, 1947. 240 security forces for the Yellow Swastika camps to protect refugees from fire and night time theft. 133 The relationship between the city government and the swastika aid agencies was definitely not a unidirectional reliance. In the immediate post Anti - Japan War period, the city government relied on the well - established networks of th e Yellow Swastika Society to collect data on the situation of the poor living in the city. 134 The Tianjin Social Bureau also coordinated relief; commanding the Red Swastika Society to provide food and relocate refugees staying at their native place associati ons in Baodi. 135 . However, this supportive relationship between the city government and the shelters began to breakdown by the end of 1948 as more and more requests for support and materials for the refugee shelters were turned down or approved on only a short - term bas is. 136 This city police also played an active role in determining who would be allowed to stay at camps, sending patrols to check refugee ID , hukou , status. 137 The relationship between the swastika societies and the city government was one of mutual assistanc e and reliance during periods of immense disaster and in dealing with the daily demands of refugee populations. The Tianjin YMCA and Swastika Societies each played a significant role in the economics of philanthropic relief. Driven by diverse motivatio ns, their popularity and importance for refugees in North China grew in direct proportion with the decline of city government stability. The YMCA provides an excellent case study for examining how 133 TMA, J0025 - 3 - 006266 - 021, August 13, 1948. 134 TMA, J0219 - 3 - 029626, December 12, 1945. 135 TMA, J0025 - 3 - 006269 - 027 July 12, 1948. 136 TMA, J0025 - 3 - 006266 - 032, August 10, 1948. 137 TMA, J0025 - 3 - 006266 - 038, September 2, 1948. 241 Tianjin elite internalized Christian concepts of social re sponsibility and how at least some missionaries became increasingly aware of the detrimental effects that unregulated industry in foreign concessions had both on Chinese workers and the reputation of Christianity itself. The Red, Blue, and Yellow Swastika societies revealed the complex relationship between non - government charities and the Tianjin Social Bureau which sought to coordinate relief work with any and all available resources. 242 CHAPTER 4: COLLABORATION AND RENEWED VISION: JAPA NESE OCCUPATION, U.S. AID IN POST - WAR TIANJIN, 1937 1949 . 1 The pressure of Sino - Japanese relations erupted on July 26 th 1937, when the Kwantung Army began their all - out general offensive in North China, occupying Beijing by the 28 th . 2 The onset of war between China and Japan effectively crippled, if not outright annihilated, plans for welfare expansion in Tianjin and plac ed all city organization that sought to rationalize all aspects of urban political life. F rom their 1 British Pathé , 1937, https://youtu.be/dnr4E7VMLkc . 2 This is known alternatively as The Battle of Beiping - Tianjin, Ping Jin zuozhan , Peiking - Tientsin Operation or North China Incident. 243 occupation in Manchuria, Taiwan, and Korea, administrators knew that improving social welfare could support their legitimacy . As Rana Mitter has suggested, programs to build up public infrastructure could be good propaganda even among those who otherwise resented their presence. 3 This was not simply propaganda, the Japanese did build some impressive infrastructure for the benefit of social welfare. For example, a doctor working with the Chinese National Relief and Rehabilitation Administration in Shandong, Herbert K. A bra ms, describes some of the medical improvements made by the Japanese in Northe ast China, particularly Qingdao: Figure 4.2: Postcard of Dojinkai Hospital. 4 3 Mitter, The Manchurian Myth, 122 - 125. 4 Last accessed 2/13/2016 http://www.ebay.ie/itm/China - Tsingtao - Japan - Mil - Post - Card - Dojinkai - Hospital - Tsingtao - C - 1930s - /172064400157?hash=item280fd6631d:g:mJYAAOSwT6pVwAqk. 244 The Japanese occupation caused many of the better doctors to flee to free China, but certain aspects of the health system were modernized. The Japanese - run Dojinkai hospitals in Tsinan and Tsingdao, es tablished before the war, were strengthened. A medica l school was established in Ts ingtao, a civilian hospital in Poshan, and a 1000 - bed military hospital in T singtao. Certain public health programs were initiated: the entire population in the cities was compelled to receive cholera immunizations annually, a nd an excellent water reservoir was constructed in Tsingtao. 5 In what ways did the Japanese promote social welfare as legitimacy in Tianjin? This chapter will show how urban charity functioned under the Second Sino - Japanese War as a means of legitimiz ing Japanese colonialism in Tianjin. Tianjin provides a critical context to study the contradictions of Japanese civilizing ideologies and military and economic objectives. As William Beasley has suggested, there was an obvious conflict between the ideali sm and self - - P rosperity Sphere. Yet irrespective of these contradictions, a working bureaucratic structure did emerge. In the aftermath of the initial invasion of North China many of these contradictions were cl early defined within the context of the city. 6 The Japanese invaded Tianjin on July 30, 1937, just two days after Beijing, making it one of the first major cities occupied by the Japanese. The occupation was relatively less violent than elsewhere as the Nationalists did not put up major resistance and the Japanese largely respected the foreign concessions in the first years of the war. Residents from the United States and Great Britain with interests in Tientsin were able to successfully place pressure on Foreign Minister Hirota to cease military action, help arrange for ceasefire in the city, and coordinate relief efforts. 7 Throughout the war, the 5 Far Eastern Survey 15, no. 22 (1946) : 341 - 344. 6 W. G. Beasley, Japanese Imperialism, 1894 - 1945 (Oxford [Oxfordshire]: Clarendon Press, 1987), 243. 245 Japanese concession in Tianjin remained a particular stronghold for the Japanese army in North China that sh eltered many high - level Chinese collaborators. 8 collaborators since the Reform Era. In China, the issue of collaboration remains intricately linked with national identity. Although there has been some variation, the word for collaborator, hanjian , unequivocally evokes the most diabolical sense of the term as traitor. Where analysis of the Vichy regime began quite swiftly after the Second ion regimes was not possible. However, this began to change after Deng Xiaoqing came to power and reinstituted the university examination system in 1977. R enewed interest in wartime collaboration was pioneered in the 1970s by John Boyle and Gerald Bunker . Their research focused primarily on high - level collaborators like Wang Jingwei and sought to contextualize his government within 9 These works inevitably shed more light on Japanese military factionalism than they did on occupation governance. In contrast, this chapter will focus on how the Tianjin executive committee functioned under the Japanese. Poshek Fu and Edward Gunn demonstrated that the Japanese conquest of Chinese cities inspired a complex identity of passivity, resistance, and collaboration among 7 An interesting side note regarding the Japanese occupation was that few of the government gh initially called it a Japanese invasion and instead referred vaguely to - 3 - 000277 - cishan tuanti she shourongsuo jiuji nanmin han [Regarding the setup o Jiujihui ˙† , August 9, 1937. 8 Asia and the Americas (May1944): 213. 9 John Hunter Boyle, China and Japan at War, 1937 - 1945: The Politics of Collaboration (Stan ford, CA: Stanford University Press, 1972). Also, see: Gerald E. Bunker, The Peace Conspiracy: Wang Ching - wei and the China War, 1937 - 1941 (Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 1972). 246 intellectuals who stayed behind in occupied areas. 10 emphasiz e the gray area between patriotism and treason and bring to discussion the moral decisions of individuals trapped by the context of wartime Shanghai. Similarly, this chapter will bring into focus the work of philanthropists, Chinese and foreign, whose acti ons both nurtured the weak while legitimating the oppressive. As Gunn points out, the occupation generated intellectual fatalism and individual disillusionment, and yet the persistence of social welfare also presents a narrative of hope and willful strugg le, if not against Japanese authority, then against futility. 11 While it is difficult to discuss the resisted Japanese policies from the archival records available, I will arg ue that it is clear social welfare remained a critical foundation for effective occupation governance and demonstrates that Japanese civil administration was keenly aware of the economic and civil disruption caused by their occupation and sought to minimiz e at least some of the unrest it caused. Parks Coble has shown that while occupation authorities clearly favored Japanese industry, Chinese business leaders could occasionally find ways to demand special consideration from the occupation government in Sha nghai. 12 Similarly, the Tianjin Chamber of Commerce remained an active advocate for the difficulties of Chinese refugees and helped to negotiate Japanese concessions to release food, medical supplies 10 Poshek Fu, Passivity, Resistance, and Collaboration: Intellectual Choices in Occupied Shanghai, 1937 - 1945 (Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 1993). 11 Edward M. Gunn, Unwelcome Muse: Chinese Literature in Shanghai and Peking, 1937 - 1945 (New York: Columbia University Press, 1980). 12 - Chinese Collaboration with Japan, 1932 - 1945: The Limits of Accommodation , ed. David P. Barrett, and Lawrence N. Shyu (Stanford, CA: Stanford Univer sity Press, 2001). 247 and funding to charities helping refugees. Although in re which the collaborationists could vindicate themselves after the war was to show that beginning of August to the end of October, 1937. 13 Discussing wartime collaboration in Tianjin is also relevant to present relations in East Asia. Timothy Brook has argued that the study of collaboration helps to undermine Chinese N ationalist myth - makin g which often appropriates Japanese wartime atrocities to achieve its contemporary political aims. One has only to look at the mainland protests over the Diaoyu Islands or the celebrations organized to commemorate the seventieth anniversary of the end of the Second Anti - Japanese War of the past several years to understand the relevance resistance narratives continue to play in Chinese politics. In reality, occupation created impossible situations where dedicated public officials seeking to protect Chin ese civilians worked alongside cronies of Japanese I mperialism. Complicity with occupation authorities most certainly fails to elicit the heroism of resistance, it neither automatically suggests treachery. 14 Charity and refugee relief remained just as imp ortant to the survival strategies of the poor and continued to save lives and alleviate suffering. Yet even within the context of humanitarian aid, the occupation created a terrain of conflicting and contradictory outcomes. While soup kitchens and Red Cros s shelters brought emergency aid to occupied areas, they also 13 14 Timothy Brook, Collaboration: Japanese Agents and Local Elites in Wartime China (Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 2005). 248 helped to stabilize society and indirectly legitimate the Japanese occupation. 15 Finally, this chapter intersects with a growing interest in how the geographic displacement caused by war affecte d individual and communal identity. 16 Post - Occupation Refugee Relief . p 17 Although Japan occupied Tianjin for about nine years, very little scholarship discusses the impact of the occupation on social welfare in the city. The bureaucratic reforms under the Tianjin collaboration government are stunning even within the first 15 Becoming Chinese: Passages to Modernity and Beyond , ed. Wen - Hsin Yeh (Berkeley: University of California Press, 2000). 16 Keith Scho ppa makes the compelling argument that rather than encouraging nationalism, occupation reinforced localism, see: R. Keith Schoppa, In a Sea of Bitterness Refugees During the Sino - Japanese War (Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 2011). 17 A Japanese post in Tianjin, where heavy fighting took place, August 1937, http://www.granger.com/results.asp?image=0065088&itemw=4&itemf=0001&itemstep=1&itemx=47. 249 mont h. For example, although the Tianjin Health Department was woefully underfunded under Guomindang management, the concern of the Japanese for maintaining public health meant that it was at least provided some measure of consistent income. One of the earliest governing institutions set up by the Japanese after their invasion of North China was the Tianjin Security Maintenance Organization, (TMSO) Zhi an weichihui ( ) , which quickly became an important part of the occupation infrastructur e. The primary purpose of this organization was to suppress anti - Japanese activities while maintaining stability in the early days of the war. The head of the Japanese Tianjin garrison, Shigeru Nakagawa, was charged with organizing candidates for the TSMO. A mong other duties, Nakagawa kept track of all charitable spending and approved funding for urban welfare projects. While Tianjin itself escaped much of the Japanese bombing, it became a focal point for refugees fleeing the chaos of war in the countrys ide, as it would again during As the Japanese established a more permanent collaboration regime, the weichihui was replaced by the Tianjin City Special Commission , Jin tebieshi gongshu ( As I discussed in Chapter 2, both the foreign and local charities in Tianjin had increasingly unified to respond to specific natural disasters and helped to fund the various social welfare programs in the city. After the Japanese occup ied the city, this charity union, lianhehui ( ) functioned like a department of the municipal government. I n order to provide funding to the Tianjin Bureau of Public Health, the security bureau had to formally request approval of the weichihui to borrow money from the charity union for this purpose. This 250 bureaucratic process demonstrates two important aspects of welfare governance under the collaboration regime. First, funding was not appropriated without bureaucratic approval, and second , private charity and ideas of benevolence persisted despite the incredible turmoil caused by national invasion. 18 To help sustain the refugees in Tianjin, several businesses provided large cash sums to purchase grain and other foodstuffs. T he Beining Railroad Company don ated 10,000 yuan to help with refugee relief. We are left to ponder the motivations for donating this sum to a collaboration regime put in place by the Japanese. Were business leaders genuinely concerned with helping displaced people, or did their donatio ns reflect a desire to look good in the eyes of Japanese administrators? While this represented the new bureaucratic structure, that local philanthropists agreed to direct funding through this new structure which indicates that it had already established a level of trust, or at least authority, among the Tianjin elite. 19 Although the social bureau and other government offices remained in operation after the Japanese occupied the city, real authority was held by the weichihui so charity organizations seeking funding turned to this office rather than traditional channels. For example, the Red Swastika Society made its request for funding from the Tianjin Charity Union to assist refugees through this office directly. 20 In response, the weichihui not only 18 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000181 - 017, August 1937 describes the appropriation of funds g iven to the public health bureau to assist refugee relief. Also see: TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000181 - 018, August, 1937 in regard to the responsibilities for refugee relief entrusted to the public health bureau, as does TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000258 - 001 August, 1937. 19 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000257 - 001, August 1937. Receipt of charity donations from the Tianjin Railroad Administration. 20 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000277 - 001, August 1937. 251 organization has been a big help with our refugees and has a history of providing 21 Similarly, the Tianjin branch of the Red Cross worked directly wit h the weichihui to provide medical services and temporary shelters to house refugees. Although these government communiqués from Tianjin charities to the new government office usually follow a similar logic of briefly mentioning their work and requesting f unding, they were not entirely sterile representations of the suffering of refugees in Tianjin. The Tianjin Red Cross sent separate funding requests for building shelters and collecting and burying corpses helps to illustrate the grim reality. 22 Although the Red Cross assisted in construct ing temporary shelters for refugees, they encountered great difficulty obtaining supplies and transporting them to needed areas. 23 21 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000277 - 002, August1937. Lists of reports and expenses regarding refugee relief. 22 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000277 - 005, August 1937. A letter from the Tianjin Red Cross regarding refugee relief and resettlement. 23 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 012061 - 025, September 3, 1937, consists of a report from a temporary refugee hospital set up by the Red Cross in Tianjin regarding the refugee situation. 252 Japanese military police reviewing Tianjin residents on the street 24 Individual Requests . What is more interesting are the requests for aid made by individual refugees. A letter from an unemployed refugee name Liu Xiaoyi explains: Because of the incident (Japanese invasion) Tianjin has become a disaster zone and the severity of the disaster has spread to many villages in Hebei. For miles and miles there are poor people everywhere. Even in the normal villagers helplessly wait to die. 25 24 - 15 - 2015, http://histomil .com/viewtopic.php?f=338&t=3918&start=5030. 25 For the letter from Liu Xiaoyi, see: TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000277 - 024, August 12, 1937. For the report from the collaboration government regarding the request, see: TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000277 - 027, August 1937. 253 scription, it is clear that refugees expected the new government to provide for their subsistence needs. Although he, like other charity heads, did not specifically mention the Japanese invasion as the source of the current disaster; this could have just as those who are already suffering and must rely completely on the mercy of this new state. Although it is not clear from the archival record exactly what kind of aid, if any, was sent to the villagers , Liu represented, the head of the weichihui . Gao ordered that the situation be investigated and emphasized that unemployed workers should be assisted under existing guidelines. 26 When the weichihui approved a request for funding , it usually directed the social bureau to carry it out but often sent copies of directives to all government departments. This reflects the increased bureaucratic interconnection under the Japanese. Individuals or individuals representing groups of refugees also made direct appeals for aid in the aftermath of the 1939 flood. Shen Zhichen described the plight of himself and coworkers at the Tianjin International Racetrack located in the British concession. The British municipal council had organ ized to provide for the daily meals of about 3000 refugees who were temporarily housed at the racetrack. Refugees were provided with flour each day and by October many of them had begun returning to their homes. When there was only about 1000 left, there w as an incident between supposed members of the Chinese Communist underground and the police so the British refused to continue conducting relief work there. By October 26 th , there were only about 476 refugees remaining as the location had become increasingly dangerous. The problem for 26 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000277 - 025, August 1937. 254 these remaining refugees was that the majority of them were in some way previously employed by the racetrack and were now unemployed. Some tri ed to continue working by setting up small vendor shops, but the majority had no other work to turn to. The team 27 Since the British stopped their relief work, the situat ion deteriorated and the municipal government sent in police and food supplies to improve the situation. 28 Although detested among the majority of Chinese historians as a traitorous faction of the puppet government and invading Japanese army that helped to establish occupation control, the weichihui was an important advocate to Japanese administrators regarding local need, and worked to establish local governance and maintain law and order, while at the same time suppressing anti - Japanese activities. Deali ng with the refugee crisis caused by the outbreak of war and keeping a handle on the flow of unsettled people was necessary both for asserting the right to rule and monitoring for potential threats. For instance, when the Huasheng Chinese Churc h, which was taking in refugees experienced a shortage of supplies, the weichihui quickly approved their request and recommended funding request even before obtaining the consent of th e Japanese military authority. 29 Another instance where collaboration officials worked with the Japanese military office to promote aid to refugees was through a request to allow refugees to turn in their old currency, which had recently become worthless, for 60% its original value. 30 This 27 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 0 03520 - 002, October 10, 1939. 28 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 003520 - 005, November 3, 1939. 29 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000277 - 014, August 1937. Funding was provided by the Union of Tianjin Charities, the lianhehui, which also organized fundraising events to help with refugee aid. 255 request made by the office of Tianjin M ayor Wen Shizhen ( ) was approved with some restrictions. Rather than distributing cash for the old currency, two banks issued coupons that could only be used in the area and exchanges could only occur for a limited time period. Only individuals classified as refugees could exchange money, and each person could only exchange a maximum of 200 units of the old currency for 120 units of the new. 31 When the exchange program conclud ed , several individual refugees and Japanese military authority denied this request. 32 While the political climate in China has gradually softened to permit some positive i nterpretation of Weste rn Christian philanthropic work , there remains a significant bias against the secret societies and indigenous religious movements which were often central in providing charitable relief. Additionally , these organizations worked closel y with the other religious based charities drawing from the same revenue sources for conducting their charitable work concluding that there seems to be no distinction between religious foundations. For example, the weichihui approved funding for a minor Da oist community in Tianjin, the Yixin tiandao longhua sheng jiaohui ( ), for their work with refugees. 33 30 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 003536 - 011, September 1939. 31 A series of correspondence regarding this currency exchange can be found in record group TMA, J0001 - 3 - 003536, see in particular: TMA, J0001 - 3 - 003536 - 001, August 28, 1939; J0001 - 3 - 003536 - 003, August 31, 1939; J0001 - 3 - 003536 - 005, August, 1939; and J0001 - 3 - 0 03536 - 006, August 29, 1939. 32 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 003536 - 012 through J0001 - 3 - 003536 - 016. 33 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000277 - 016, August 1937. Although this may have been partly due to the connection between this Daoist sect and several Japanese converts. Also see: TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000277 - 023, August, 1937. 256 While the Japanese were very careful to swiftly suppress any anti - Japanese news outlets and arrested and tortured many intellectuals, like the Nationalist city government before and Communist city governing committees after it, they relied heavily on local private organizations to investigate and gather statistical data on the numbers and situation of refugees. 34 Local charities and government bu reaus were organized to gather statistics. Nevertheless, the healthcare responsibilities of the bureau of hygiene, weishengju remained underfunded. A letter to the head of the WCH, Mr. Gao, ded refugees in the temporary hospital, many of the doctors were hired without any qualifications and we have no money to buy medical supplies. 35 While the weishengju could not perform its primary function to support public health during the Japanese oc cupation effectively, its place within the bureaucratic structure in occupied Tianjin never completely dissolved. Japanese administrators were keenly interested gathering detailed information about potential epidemics, and did so through the bureau of pub lic health. 36 This is important, because it demonstrates that much of the clinical militancy associated with Republican Era medical relief really codified under the Japanese occupation. Eventually, even the minimal amount of refugee work that the public h ealth bureau managed was dissolved and redistributed among several smaller clinics. 37 34 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000277 - 028, August 1937. 35 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 012061 - 021, August 29, 1937. 36 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 012061 - 020, August 18, 1937. 37 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 012061 - 023, August 31, 1937. 257 Furthermore, the weichihui actively solicited the advice of foreign charities with international ties like the Tianjin branch of the Red Cross. In a letter to Mr. Gao, the Red Cross recommended prioritizing road reconstruction and transportation improvement in order to effectively distribute relief supplies. The Red Cross also requested military protection for transporting relief goods. 38 The WCH responded by ordering the p olice to provide protection at the refugee hospital and encouraged the RC to notify them with any future problems or concerns. 39 One of the problems with demonizing the weichihui as an evil extension of Japanese control is that it implicates organizations which have been singled out by Chinese historians as unequivocally patriotic. For example, Ding Weiping and Bai Zheng Council which was established by memb ers of the Communist Party and anti - Japanese activist Zang Fenghua in 1935. 40 However, this organization did not hesitate to call on the weichihui to provide refugee assistance. Consequently, the context of emergency relief complicates definite categorizat ions of hanjan and guilt by association. 41 38 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 012061 - 016, Augus t 11, 1937. Also see: TMA, J0001 - 3 - 012061 - 018, August 18, 1937. 39 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 012061 - 017, August 13, 1937. 40 Ding Weiping and the Women to Jilin daxue, shehui kexue xuebao , June 30, 1993. Also see: Bai Zheng ji baodingjun fenqu yuan fu siling Zang Fenghua 9ÛF…˚†˜¶˝− , [Remembering Baodi ng Army Zhonghuagui Qr , November 5, 2012. 41 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000459 - 006, November 1937. 258 The International Settlement and Wartime Relief . Japanese strategies for colonial control were often mixed and self - conflicting. P art of the Japanese strategy of occupation was to cut off all news from outside Tianjin and other areas it controlled in North China. This included a blocking of all shortwave radio traffic that essentially isolated the city. 42 Yet, the Japanese did permit the doctors of the international settlement along with a group of Chinese doctor s to organize an International Refugee Medical Relief Organization, Wanguo nanmin ziliao jiujihui ( ) in the pharmacy office of a mining company in the British concession. 43 This international relief organization worked with the collaboration regime to build up temporary shelters for refugees along with providing medical care. Although their letter to the weichihui is careful to avoid placing blame directly on the Japanese, In Tianjin there was an unexpected and unfortunate event. Homeless citizens are everywhere. The refugees in the foreign concessions are being taken in by all charity groups and the injured or sick need urgent treatment. 44 However, they did organize and begin distribution of relief several days before obtaining approval from the Japanese temporary committee. This organization had already selected several locations to help people and began distributing supplies on the 7 th of August. Since the Japanese closed or appropriated many of the government - run hospitals to serve wounded sol diers, private hospitals were inundated with injured refugees. The 42 Wolff, interview, transcript (1976): 46. 43 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000277 - 008, August 9, 1937. 44 Ibid. 259 weichihui forwarded a letter from one such hospital to the social bureau which explained their situation: and requesting funding. [Attached letter] Our leader of this charity hospital has been with the organization for about 20 years, and we have done a lot of free treatment to take care of the poor each year. Since the July 29 th sudden event, the bombing, an d the hail of bullets flying everywhere many were injured. The city is in a dangerous situation now because the public hospitals have all been shut down and we are the only one still in operation in this location. Our location is right in the middle of the disaster area so we are well positioned to help. There are so many injured refugees that they are lying on the street everywhere. We took in hundreds of refugees and whatever medicine we had stored has all been used up. We are also feeding the patients a nd have set up a soup kitchen to feed refugees. 45 The shutdown of government hospitals also affected the bureau of public health. Patients were transferred from these hospitals to temporary shelters set up by the bureau. 46 Even though foreigners in Tian jin attempted to help Chinese refugees and accommodated many thousands in the various concessions, the international settlement felt overwhelmed by the presence of poor Chinese and requested their removal. For example, the British requested that refugees at a shelter opened on Machang Road be relocated. 47 After a confrontation between the Japanese and the British in June 1939, the ability of Western concessions to protect Chinese people was severely diminished. The dispute occurred after six men fled to th e British c oncession after the manager of a Japanese owned bank, Cheng Hsi - kang was assassinated. Initially the British turned the suspects over for questioning, but refused to release them back to the Japanese after it 45 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000277 - 054, October 1937. 46 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 010647 - 007, September 18, 1937. 47 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 003520, 1939. 260 was found they were tortured. In re sponse, the IJA surrounded the British concession with electrified wire and blockaded the settlement. Eventually the suspects were turned over to the Japanese and were subsequently tortured and executed. 48 Obviously, while the Japanese had no problem allow ing foreigners to help legitimate their occupation by seeing to the social welfare of the city, they would not tolerate any challenge to their territorial authority , even a year before declaring war on Allied Powers. The experience of Japanese occupatio n then could vary quite dramatically. As Ernst Wolff explained: The Japanese sent military supervisors, but they quickly realized that they had to have people with knowledge of English and knowledge of business administration. So the type of supervisors that we saw in the Kailan Mining Administration were not the type of rough military that are usually portrayed as the Japanese occupiers of China. However, the Japanese military finally insisted that all the enemies that means the British administration s taff and the Belgians of the mines, were sent out to civilian camps that were established in Weihsien. The Japanese administration of the supervisors of the Kailan, particularly the chief supervisor, Mr. Shirakawa, were always very well inclined toward the British staff. I still remember that Mr. Shirakawa gave orders to send food parcels to the interned Kailan Mining personnel at Weihsien. This kind of action seems small and trivial, but under the war circumstances and the temper of the Japanese military i t was a remarkable show of friendliness and sympathy. 49 Besides those Europeans who remained in Tianjin committed to missionary work or whose presence was required to maintain local business operations, a small stream of Jewish immigrants fleeing German eu genics found their way to Tianjin. As Wolff explains: 48 For an entire monograph devoted to this particular incident and its diplomatic consequences see: Sebastian Swann, Japan's Imperial Dilemma in China: The Tientsin Incident, 1939 1940 (London: Routledge, 2008). 49 Wolff, interview, 43. 261 refugees from Germany and Austria, mostly German Jews who had fled from Hitler and who had been fortunate enough to escape. No w the situation in Tientsin was quite different from that in Shanghai where the refugees arrived by the thousands. In Shanghai before the Pacific War, they could land even without a passport and without a visa. I think it was the only place in the world wh ere that was possible, so that the refugees arrived there by the thousands. In North China, Japanese control was much stricter and they would not allow any refugees to come in. Still there was a trickle of some fortunate refugees who managed to get north. We always had throughout the war years about 80 Jewish families, refugees from Germany or Austria who had to maintain some kind of living in China. The Jewish population of North China were mostly Russian Jews; that is, a group of refugees that had left Ru ssia after the communist revolution there, had settled in Manchuria and drifted down to Tientsin. But when the Hitler movement started in Germany and the refugees started coming to China, the Russian Jews and a few Germans formed refugee committees and loo ked after the people that came over from Germany and were permitted to come to North China. 50 On August 9, 1940, all British troops were ordered to withdraw. Roughly one year later on November 14, 1941 the Japanese ordered American troops to leave. Altho ugh only a few marines remained in the concession, 49 members of the 4 th division were seized on December 8, 1941, one day after the attack on Pearl Harbor. The Japanese would occupy the city until the city was liberated on August 15, 1945, V - J Day. Welfare Under an Occupation Regime . While the realities of Japanese Imperialism were both ethnocentric and self - serving, the rhetoric of occupation and expansion represented a notion of Confucian paternalism familiar to our previous discussions. In his co mprehensive work on Korean - Japanese relations, Tabohashi Kiyoshi suggests that ever since Japan was able to 50 Wolff, interview, 45 - 46, Two books that describe the Jewish community in Tianjin include a memoir by Isabelle Maynard: Isabelle Maynard, China Dreams: Growing up Jewish in Tientsin (Iowa City: University of Iowa Press, 1996) and a work by Anna Song: Anna Song, Youtairen zai Tianjin [The Jews in Tianjin] , (Beijing: Wu zhou chuanbo chubanshe, 2004). 262 negotiate for colonial rights on mainland China, Japanese leaders like clan chief Itakura Katsukiyo had been arguing for an immediate attack and oc cupation of Northern China, but one that also ensured the welfare of the conquered people. 51 Louise Young has argued experimentation in techniques of social management by collaboration regimes. 52 These modernization projects included an intense development of the welfare state through the Tianjin Ministry of Health and Welfare. Particularly as ideological repression increased, many el progressive intelligensia looked to China both as an escape and fertile soil to cultivate their utopian visions. Tianjin was often a stop for JCP members who were on their way to Yenan. These c olonial administrators worked to create and contribute to an occupation economic problems to China. To what degree these Japanese social welfare principles omewhat questionable, especially as the Guomindang was already looking to Japan and Germany as models for establishing a new state - society relationship and invigorating personal moral responsibilities to energize government led welfare programs. Japanes e administrators in Manchukuo were keenly aware that poverty was the most fertile soil for cultivating anti - imperialist and communist sentiments and sought to legitimate their colonial endeavor through a developmentalist agenda. As Young 51 Tabohashi Kiyoshi, Kindai nissen kankei no kenky .D0¦ [A study of mod ern day Korean relations], ( T ky : Munetaka Shob , 1972): 299 - 300. 52 Louise Young, Japan's Total Empire: Manchuria and the Culture of Wartime Imperialism (Berkeley: University of California Press, 1998): 397 - 398. 263 suggests, this age nda was easily supplanted when it came into conflict with the imperatives of Japanese empire building or the private interests of collaborating Chinese elite, but did introduce a rhetoric of development that was taken directly from the movement to mitigate rural poverty in Japan. 53 When the number of refugees in Tianjin ordered police to encourage refugees to migrate to Manchuria where jobs and uncultivated land were both supposedly plentiful. 54 However, such encouragement was largely unsuccessful. Instead, many refugees from Dongbei and Dalian made their way to Tianjin. So many in fact, that the city government established a Dongbei Refugee Family Workhouse whose chair wa s Che Xiangchen ( ), an intellectual Marxist and a nti - Japanese agitator. 55 Although urban social welfare before occupation was marked by consistent attempts by an overreaching Guomindang appointed leadership, under the Japanese this was replaced by charities competing for the scraps. Because of the refugee influx brought on by war, Tianjin charities were stretched to their absolute limit. Charities seeking to obtain funding from the executive committee had to submit competing proposals on the most ef ficient use of funds. 56 The Japanese military regiment assigned to garrison North China after the 1937 start of hostilities was the Imperial Japanese Army, (IJA) 27 th 53 Young, Japan's Total Empire , 43. 54 TMA, J0252 - 1 - 000302, September 1939. 55 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 009802 - 004, 1942. For more on Che Xiangchen, see: Chen Zongyan chen yu dongbei kangri yiyoungjun [Vehicle to Lichen and Anti - Japanese Volunteer Armies], Gongchandang yuan [Communist Magazine] , March 15, 2015. 56 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000277 - 001, August 1938. 264 Division. This division was preceded by the Tianjin China Garrison Army , Shina Chutongun ( ) suppression of the Boxer Rebellion. From 1937 to 1940 this regiment was commanded by Masaharu Honma, better known for commanding the 14 th to invade the Philippines and as the orchestrat or of the Bataan Death March. The IJA 27 th Division supervised charity relief efforts and participated in sending disaster aid to Tianjin after the 1939 flood. The Tianjin Chamber of Commerce continued to serve as the organizational focal point for ch arity fundraising throughout the Japanese occupation. As has been discussed, in undated with refugee women seeking to have their child in the clean environment of the hospital, however there were few beds available and even as late as August 1939, two years after the initial occupation, hospital facilities remained inadequate. Rather than seek chamber of commerce for funds and help with advertising their specific needs in local newspapers. 57 Later, as the responsibility of social welfare relief became increasingly the responsibility of private charity, the chamber organized groups of refugee women to be 58 Chamber members were also organized into investigation tea ms to gather information on the living conditions of temporary housing set up for 57 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 009646 - 002, August 23, 1939. 58 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 009647 - 007, August 22, 1939. 265 refugees. 59 One of the biggest donators for winter relief was a Tianjin tobacco company which donated two hundred thousand yuan in December 1944. 60 Access to medical care for pregnant women and sick refugees was also made problematic by existing regulations that classified refugees in the same category as Chinese soldiers employed by the Japanese army. To cover the costs of treating, housing, and burying refugees, the hospita l worked with the F lood R elief A ssistance C ommittee established by the TJCOC to come up with new regulations for separately categorizing refugees and military wounded. Under this new plan, the health department provided the medicine needed to treat refugee Japanese military covered the costs of daily room and board, for coffins and burial. 61 The charging refugees for treat ment. 62 That a request for the Japanese army to provide funds for sick patients sent by city charities to the Tianjin #2 Hospital also suggests that the Japanese army did not demand free care for soldiers. 63 Along with helping to raise funds for all the ser vices mentioned thus far, the chamber began to specifically raise funding for Daoist priests to perform rituals for dead refugees. For example, after a breach of the Yellow River wiped out Chaoba Village, the 59 T MA, J0128 - 3 - 009647 - 009, August 22, 1939. 60 TMA, J0001 - 2 - 000950 - 015, December 14, 1944. The communication from the Tianjin occupation government does not give the specific name of the tobacco company, but does specify that it was a local company. 61 TM A, J0001 - 3 - 002580 - 001, August 31, 1939. Also see: TMA, J0001 - 3 - 002580 - 002, August 1939. 62 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 002580 - 003, September 1939. 63 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 002580, September 1939. 266 TJCOC raised funds for the salvation of the dea d. 64 Although I found only a lim i ted amount of evidence related to Islamic charity work in Tianjin during this period, it did play an important role nonetheless. The China Huijiao United Tianjin Mosque Association received flood refugees at their organizati on. 65 After the 1939 flood, the Jin tebieshi gongshu ordered that plans be made for future flood prevention and a possible budget for needed improvements submitted to the office. This special business office also demanded that each government bureau submi t 66 Even the tewujiguan ( ), a Japanese spy agency, worked to raise funding for flood prevention and refugee relief. 67 Another outright coercive branches of the occupation government, the Tianjin Movie and Drama Censorship Committee , Tianjinshi yingpian xiqu jiancha yuan lianxihui ( ) could function in the cause of benevolence. In October 1939 , the committee recommended a list of entertainment establishments that could be shut down to accommodate flood refugees. 68 The Japanese government office also divided the responsibility of maintaining some soup kitchens and shelters for refugees among specific local businesses which included Japanese owned stores and factorie s. 69 64 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 007336 - 034, August 1, 1938. Also see: TMA, J0128 - 3 - 009646 - 004, August 23, 1939. 65 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 009854 - 001, 1939. 66 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 002678 - 002, September 1939. 67 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 002678, September 1939. 68 TMA, J0110 - 1 - 000360 - 027, October 5, 1939. 69 TMA, J0083 - 1 - 000509, September 1939. 267 Although the Japanese military command delegated most of the responsibilities for providing social welfare to the civilian arm of its collaboration government, certain aspects of relief work were closely monitored. Every individual who sought to recei ve government charity, had to register with local police and then all applications were processed centrally by the Japanese. In this way, they could keep track of thousands of displaced and unsettled people and monitor where they were going. 70 Emergency Flood Relief Under the Japanese . Figure 4.5: Combating Tientsin Floods (1939). 71 70 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 003536 - 008, August 30, 1939. 71 Combating Tientsin Floods (1939) British Pathé . Last accessed 2/13/2016 https://www.youtube.com/ watch?v=x2q9mhBescA. 268 In 1939, the Yongding River burst through its northern dikes and flooded 116 counties in the Hai River Basin wreaking total havoc in Tianjin where more than 100,000 residents had to evacuate their homes. 72 Refugees were everywhere camping out at temples, schools, local shops, theaters, churches and teahouses. 73 Many schools delayed opening for months after the disaster. 74 Some of these sites could no longer be used for any other purpose further damaging the local economy. 75 During the 1939 flood disaster, the Tianjin Chamber organized its own flood relief committee called the Tianjinshi shuizai jiuji weiyuanhui ( ) and worked with other private charities like The Society for General Good, pushanshe ( ) which organized small teams of volunteers to send lifesaving boats to rescue residents trapped in their homes and distribute food with funds provided by the TJCOC. 76 72 Lillian Li, Fighting Famine in North China , (Stanford CA: Stanford University Press, 2007), 285 - 292. 73 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 009108 - 002, August 23, 1939. Also see: TMA, J0001 - 3 - 009108 - 012, August 29, 1939. 74 TMA, J 0110 - 3 - 003857. Document folder contains numerous examples . A lso see: folder J0110 - 3 - 003873 (both document folders contain multiple years). 75 TMA, J0113 - 3 - 000546, August 1939. 76 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 009646 - 003, August 23, 1939. Also see: TMA, J0128 - 3 - 009646 - 01 7, August 29, 1939. 269 77 Refugees for this flood lived temporarily in schools and temples where chamber members set up soup kitchens and tents. 78 When the chamber could no longer raise funds, it turned to borrowing products from its members. For example, the ch amber borrowed flour from the Shoufeng Mill and other companies to maintain refugee food supplies, while the Hejing Water Association was instructed to send tea and water to refugee shelters. 79 While the TJCOC was responsible for organizing much of the flood relief, it was also accountable to the Japanese military authorities for providing accurate audits of how funding was allocated, what refugees were registered, and how much food was distributed to each. 80 The bureaucratization of social welfare under the Japanese cannot be overemphasized; the chamber was required to provide daily reports of resource 77 British troops during the Pei Ho River flood, accessed October 15, 2015, http://www.combinedfleet.com/ Tientsin_t.htm. 78 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 009646 - 005, August 24, 1939. 79 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 009647 - 011, August 22, 1939. Orders were given by the Tianjin Chamber of Commerce. Also see: TMA, J0128 - 3 - 009647 - 012, August 22, 1939. 80 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 009647 - 028, August 25, 1939. 270 distribution. 81 T he North China Disaster Relief Committee branch in Tianjin sent reports to the IJA 27 th Division to request funding and support. 82 The divi sion set up a specific office to deal with problems related to refugee management which required daily intelligence on the number and situation of refugees in the city. 83 This division required each wing of the Tianjin Municipal Government to provide daily information on all assistance. 84 While the relief capacity of the municipal government was severely limited under the Japanese, it was still able to coordinate disaster clean up and sought to alleviate some of the suffering caused by the flood. The adminis tration office, jinshi gongshe ( 5¢ ) planned to provide free electricity to refugee camps for lighting and electric water pumps to disaster relief teams to help clear out homes and other buildings of waste water. However , the plan faced two problems, first there was little to no electrical infrastructure leading to the camp the second problem was that the roads leading to the affected housing were also destroyed. Roadwork was consequently prioritized and electric street c ars were appropriated by the city construction department to transport materials to the damaged roads. 85 The Japanese seem to have been quite responsive to the requests of Tianjin charities for aid, at least in the months immediately following occupatio n, going so far as 81 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 009647 - 062, September 6, 1939. This create d a truly impressive amount of data which is housed in the municipal archives. 82 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 009105 - 001, October 16, 1939. 83 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 009108 - 002, August 23, 1939. 84 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 009108 - 015, September 2, 1939. 85 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000010 - 018, Septem ber 19, 1939. 271 to publish the phone numbers of all members of the 27 th Division Department of Refugee 86 However, all responsibility for flood refugees was eventually transferred to the and municipal government by the end of September 1939 and the Japanese army stopped assigning incoming refugees was delegated to the Tianjin Polic e Department. Here we see a clear example of how the actual process of governing disaster relief and the burden it placed on Japanese resources was managed. While the Japanese began their relief operations with much rhetoric about saving Chinese lives, th is responsibility was very quickly delegated to others. As the IJA transferred relief responsibilities to local city government, it also provided a list of priorities for future relief: (1) c alming their (refugees) thinking and controlling their order to nurture their physical strength, cultivate their independence, and promote sanitation and immunization , (2) e mployment: all government departments will try to find refugees jobs to be self - supporting , and (3) disease prevention. Although the military off ice would no longer receive the daily reports, they commanded the practice of gathering statistics to continue. The Tianjin Municipal Government was ordered to record how many supplies were needed each day, the number of refugees who died, what diseases a living expenses, how many soup kitchen s provided food and how much was provided, the number of animal deaths in the city, vaccinations, the unemployment rate and number of refugees currently undergoing job training. 87 86 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 009114 - 005, August 30, 1939. 272 In the month following this transfer, it seems that many of these objectives were carried out. Daily food distribution reports were directed to the Tianjin Flood Relief 88 The hygiene department gathered information on disease treatment from the hospitals. 89 Sanitary violations were investigated and reported. 90 The budget for meals for sick refugees at least slightly increased. 91 And charities continued sending their daily reports to the social bureau. 92 Relief agencies with international connections remained active. The Red Cross also responded to the Tianjin 1939 flood by organizing refugee shelters and providing them with food. This food was purchased through donations that came from the members of the Tianjin Chamber. 93 Chamber members themselves often went to damaged rural areas to report on the situation there. 94 Private merchant associations who organized their own charities l ooked to the collaboration regime for guidance and support. As winter approached following the flood, the Tianjin Commerce Association, zizhu lin huashang , which was primarily an association of bank workers, made an urgent clothing, but it was miniscule compared to the 10,000 refugees which had taken up 87 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 012474 - 042, September 1939. 88 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 012474 - 054, October 1939. 89 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 012475 - 022, September 1939. 90 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 012475 - 031, September 1939. 91 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 0 12475 - 035, September, 1939. The per meal budget was increased from three dimes to four. 92 TMA, J0128 - 2 - 001063 - 013, 1939. 93 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 009647 - 036, August 29, 1939. 94 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 009656 - 021, August 31, 1939. 273 residence in th e French Zone. The YMCA had been providing medical treatment for the refugees, and the commerce association had additional supplies on the way difficult. 95 special investigations department to ask for help. 96 flood refugees. During the 1939 flood, it took in over 2300 refugees and pr ovided their daily living needs. Their report to the Tianjin City Flood Relief Committee included details that reflect the ethics of self - reliance noting that they recruited able - bodied refugees to prepare the drinking water and provide sanitation. The ben evolence hall also emphasized their illness prevention measures until the conclusion of their relief work on August 19th. 97 Buddhist relief agencies like the Tianjin Yellow Cross and the Blue Swastika Society operated many independent soup kitchens in Tian jin at approximately 13 different locations that together served roughly 7100 people each day. 98 Some of the charities that helped to provide flood relief aid reflected Shinminhui , was a pro - Japanese political organization which sought to purge Asia 95 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 003541 - 002, December 1939. 96 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 003541 - 001, November 11, 1939. 97 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 009108 - 003, August 24, 1939. Also see: TMA, J0001 - 3 - 009108 - 029, September 10, 1939. 98 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 009108 - 020, September 4, 1939. Also see: TMA, J 0001 - 3 - 009108 - 024, September 6, 1939. 274 the TJCOC to distribute flour to flood refugees. 99 According to C eng Y eying , this organization was established on December 24 th 1937 by a Japanese spy unit until it was disbanded in 1945 at the end of the war. Also, a blatantly pro - Japanese newspaper the Takanori News Wu de bao ( ) requested the municipal government help the refugees and also helped t o raise charity funds, by approving a plan to sell movie tickets to a theater in the French Zone. Although this fundraising was organized to support winter refugee relief it also reinforced Japanese supremacy and right to rule as the fund drive commemorate d the end of the First Sino - Japanese War. 100 the jurisdiction of Hebei Province. During the 1939 flood, the Japanese head of the Hebei Refugee Relief Office, Asami Kikuo , sent a letter to Tianjin promising to supply flour and other donations to assist the flood area in Tianjin city. 101 Two days later, the Hebei office sent another letter detailing the shipment of supplies that included flour and vegetables shipped to the city by b oat. 102 Regional support also came from the Beijing Salvation Army headquarters which sent 4000 winter coats to Tianjin. It was necessary coats would not meet with any tra nsportation delays. 103 The mayor of Tianjin also made a 99 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 009646 - 019, August 27, 1939. 100 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 009368 - 001, January 23, 1943. 101 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 003497 - 001, August 30, 1939. 102 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 003497 - 002, September 1, 1939. 103 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 010181 - 252, November 22, 1939. 275 refugees. 104 In addition, Mayor Wen sent letters of thanks to the Tangshan city mayor nder for transporting and receiving Tianjin refugees. 105 The Tianjin Municipal Government also helped with flood relief by providing free electricity to light the refugee camps. 106 However, by the end of October, the city began to wind down its flood relief o perations. 107 Nevertheless, In March of 1940, several any way possible to send these refugees back to their homes. 108 Occupation Police . The police of an occupation regime are often associated with the most nefarious aspects of colonization, and this assumption is not without evidence. Especially for refugees, police were provided with the power to identify them as inner and outer refugees which could have significant influ ence on the kind of aid they could access. 109 After the flood, the police were instructed to bar any single men from entering the city as refugees. 110 Healthy refugees identified by the Tianjin police could be rounded up and 104 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 011174 - 005, August 23, 1939. 105 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 011174 - 010, September 11, 1939. 106 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 000010 - 018, August 1939. 107 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 012475 - 040, October 1939. 108 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 004412 - 001, March 27, 1940. 109 TMA, J 0001 - 3 - 003536 - 007, September 1, 1939. 110 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 011174 - 001, August 22, 1939. 276 sent to Manchurian labor camps, as police were charged with the responsibility of finding any possible means to resettle the displaced. 111 After 1941, the foreign concessions offered little protection for refugees as occupation police could now enter unimpeded into those areas to conduct s urveys of the poor. 112 There was certainly an environment of constant observation and scrutiny demanded by the Japanese colonial government which constantly feared bad elements sneaking their way into groups of refugees, not unlike what the Guomindang would face during the Civil War. 113 The police often rounded up refugees for random investigation. 114 Policing under the high - level collaborator Zhou Diping, who served as as 115 Zhou also ordered the police to tear down refugee camps that had been constructed without permission and relocate refugees out of the city limits. 116 At the same tim e however, policing also persisted in many of the socially beneficial capacities it had in previous periods. The city continued to maintain a fire brigade and the TJCOC often requested the presence of officers when distributing food to refugees and assign ing temporary housing to maintain order. 117 Police guards were 111 TMA, J0218 - 3 - 004617, September, 1939. Also see: TMA, J0252 - 1 - 000302, September, 1939. 112 TMA, J0218 - 3 - 005372, 1941. 113 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 003262, December 1939. 114 TMA, J0218 - 3 - 005868, August 1943. 115 TMA, J001 - 3 - 008922 - 002, May 21, 1945. In the post - war period, Mayor Zhou was arrested and imprisoned as a collaborator by the Hebei high court on May 10, 1946. 116 TMA, J0218 - 3 - 006377, January 1945. 117 TMA, J0218 - 3 - 004732, August 1939. Also see: TMA, J0128 - 3 - 009647 - 002, August 31, 1939. 277 shourongsue , and sometimes were recruited to help build new shelters when refugee numbers increased. 118 Police also directly distributed relief supplies to refugees via each precinct. 119 What is interesting here is that it is still the TJCOC which is organizing meetings with the police to conduct this relief work. 120 Even individual requests for aid were not ignored. 121 For example, a refugee, Pang Guangli, reque so the municipal government branch office ordered the local precinct to investigate. This short memo shows that the police functioned to distribute monetary aid to refugees, that individual requests were investigated and that refugees knew that they could appeal to the police for help. Further evidence that such a request was not simply ignored the police reported that Pang was indeed a real person who owned a local fabric sto re but was completely destitute and could not afford to bury his wife. 122 The situation of refugees did not always become stable once they entered camps. Not only were conditions often deplorable, but bandits and robbers remained an ever present threat. Stil l active under the Japanese, the civilian coastguard was commanded by the TJCOC to provide security to these refugee camps. 123 The civilian coastguard head, Li Fulin, urgently requested additional boats to help save refugees trapped by flood 118 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 009647 - 003, August 22, 1939. Also see: TMA, J0218 - 3 - 008490, August 1943. 119 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 009647 - 017, August 21, 1939. 120 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 009647 - 021, August 24, 1939. 121 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 005350 - 002, October 14, 1941. 122 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 005350 - 003, October 20, 1941. 123 TMA, J0128 - 3 - 009647 - 010, August 22, 1939. 278 waters. This p olice force was also tasked with the grim assignment of collecting and burying the dead bodies of those who did not make it. 124 As winter approached following the 1939 flood, the Tianjin police submitted a joint request with the social bureau for the city ha ll to provide funds to distribute food coupons and steamed buns to the refugees in the city. The request was approved but amounted to a pittance, 28 jin of steamed buns , mantou , and 2500 yuan. 125 While supplies were minimal, each precinct maintained careful records of the number of refugees in their areas. That police continued to meet with the Tianjin United Charity Group throughout the Japanese occupation suggests that such information may have been useful for religious charities to organize their relief e fforts. 126 The Tianjin police also engaged in passive resistance through non - compliance. For example, spy agencies , tewu jiguan ( ) , demanded Tianjin police precincts to conduct a three - day investigation of all the young strong refugees for any undesirables or undercover agents; they complied and even designed the investigation form. But after a very careful investigation, the police r eported no corrupt characters to the Japanese authorities. With a population of several tens of thousands of refugees in the city or among those refugees returning to their villages, and considering that street protests were not entirely uncommon, it is li kely that this was a demonstration of a certain level of non - 127 124 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 011174 - 006, August 25, 1939. 125 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 001184 - 041, February 27, 1939. 126 TMA, J0116 - 1 - 001139 - 004, August 30, 1942. 127 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 003262 - 001, December 1939. Also see: TMA, J0001 - 3 - 003262 - 002, December 1939, and TMA, J0001 - 3 - 003262 - 003, December 1939. 279 Print journalism in Tianjin after the occupation proved to be quite a dismal scene. Both the Dagongbao and the Yishibao fle d the city. However, there is some evidence that newspapers operating under the Japanese still served some benefit to the social welfare. For example, based on a newspaper report that the hygienic conditions in the refugee camp at the #6 Elementary Schoo 128 Tianjin newspapers also continued to carry stories about the problems caused by war and the kinds of relief efforts the municipal gover nment was providing. In June 1944, the head of the Tianjin social bureau, Zhu, traveled to the 27 refugee shelters in the city which had been specifically set up to help those who had been driven from their homes because of bombing. The social bureau also arranged for safety teams to train refugees on how to rescue bombing victims. 129 128 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 012474 - 016, August 30, 1939. 129 TMA, J0001 - 3 - 009570 - 001, Ju ne 20, 1944. 280 - War Recovery . Figure 4.7: Wartime Propaganda Posters. 130 Wartime propaganda presented the Chinese as the unique friend of the United States committed to fighting for freedom and democracy. Rev. C. Bertram Rappe, who worked in west China as the vice - Chairman of the International Famine Committee, went . 131 The patriotic duty to safeguard their own interests by rendering all possible aid. It seems that particularly within the context of war, famine relief and charity became major contributors into the special relationship myth between China and the United States. 132 As seen in the thr ee images above , this 130 Images obtainable from the United China Relief Records, Manuscripts and Archives Division, The New York Public Library, Astor, Lenox and Tilden Foundations, MssCol. 3078. 131 Rev. C. Betram Rappe, Famine Relief: Miscellaneous pamphlets, unda ted Box 94, YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of its Records, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 281 propaganda often depicted Chinese within the family unit suffering together. While this F ascism, it was effective at eliciting the ge nerosity of U.S. aid to China. The United China Relief was organized in New York with the aim to provide many federations , lianhehui , that formed in Chinese cities among faith - based charities, this UCR brought together numerous philanthropic organizations to reduce duplication and coordinate their activities. 133 American charity work during the war and postwar is important for two reasons. First, U.S. food aid continued up through the end of Nationalist control of Tianjin and was a major component of relief work in the city. Second, the presence of U.S. and U.N. systems of bureaucracy that intersected with local planning and created networks between Chinese philanthropists who were almost always among the elite , and foreigners who were almost always Christian. The im age to the right demonstrates the sort of American paternalism that accompanied this aid. 134 The seven organizations that composed the United China Relief included: The American Bureau for Medical Aid to China helped to remedy the lack of anesthetics and to furnish medical supplies urgently requested by the Chinese Red Cross, which supported emergency aid stations throughout the country, epidemic control programs, and 132 Famine Relief: Miscellaneous pamphlets, undated Box 94, YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of its Records, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University o f Minnesota, Minneapolis. 133 United China Relief became United Service to China in 1947. 134 Box 94, YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of its Re cords, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 282 training centers for physicians. The Chinese Red Cross, as we have seen, was also active at refugee relief in Tianjin. The American Committee for Chinese War Orphans sought to rescue, shelter, and trains thousands of orphaned children. The American Committee for Chinese Industrial Cooperatives operated 3,000 cooperatives supporting some 500 ,000 refugees in a vast expanding self - owned, self - help project to rehabilitate Chinese industrial capacity which had been crippled by the Japanese occupation. 135 The Associated Boards for Christian Colleges in China represented thirteen colleges with an e nrollment of nearly eight t housand students; eleven of these schools had been forced by the war to transfer their teaching and research activities as far as 1500 miles inland. The China Aid Council and China Emergency Relief Committee each organized to ra ise funds for refugee relief. The Church Committee for China Relief served as the official agency of the United Protestant Churches of America for providing direct relief in bombed and famine areas, food and shelter and medical relief for the destitute, a nd work projects for men and women largely through missionaries and Christian Chinese associates without regard to particular denomination belief. 136 The major conglomeration of aid agencies further demonstrates the significance of the YMCA and the vice chai rman of UCR was Eugene E. Barnet, who was also the acting General Secretary of the National Council of YMCA. 137 135 Documents related to the Chinese Industrial Cooperatives and China Aid Council are held at the Columbia University Library Archives INDUSCO, Inc., Records 1938 1985: Rare Book and Manuscript Library, New York. 136 Box 94, YMCA International Work in China: An Inventory of its Records, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota , Minneapolis. 137 New York, NY Pamphlet, Famine Relief: Miscellaneous pamphlets, undated Box 94, YMCA International 283 U.N. and U.S. oversight remained critical to postwar relief providing not only material support but also implementation solutions for relieving the refugees from Dongbei. 138 While the Guomindang needed foreign charity to supplement its failing economy, the central government wanted to remain in control of who and how that aid was distributed. When the U.S. military stationed in Tianjin began freely distributing relief supplies, the Tianjin police and GMD military police sent urgent request for this to stop. 139 Japanese Refugees . As Tianjin was one of the primary ports for transporting Japanese military and civilian personnel in China back to Japan, it became a major concentration point for Japanese wartime refugees. 140 There, with little national oversight of this process until the middle of January 1946, the Tianjin Municipal Government and police were charged with helping to oversee the departure of th ese Japanese and ensure their protection (although the U.S. military stationed in Tianjin was also responsible). Part of the departure process was making sure that the Japanese were not taking with them anything of value. 141 Japanese refugees had their p roperty confiscated and the acting mayor in Tianjin, Zhang Work in China: An Inventory of its Records, Kautz Family YMCA Archives, University of Minnesota, Minneapolis. 138 TMA, J0025 - 3 - 006259 - 020, May 19, 1946. 139 TMA, J0219 - 3 - 025980, May 30, 1946. 140 Many Koreans also returned to their home country through Tianjin and this is one of the reasons why Tianjin still has a large Korean population today. 141 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000604 - 019, November 10, 1945. 284 Yan - e transferred this property to the central government who was supposed to use those funds for relieving Chinese war refugees. 142 However , on January 18 th , an office for preparing Japanese refu gees to repatriate established, the Tianjin Returning Overseas China Affairs Office ( ) to process their departure and advocate for their fair treatment. This office secured low or at cost pricing for vegetables sold to the Japanese refugees, and a rranged for all Japanese leaving to stay at the same Furong school. 143 Tension between the Guomindang and the U . N . over these refugees is quite visible in the documents. While the Guomindang C entral G overnment commanded the Tianjin Municipal Government to s eize all Japanese assets and investigate all foreigners before granting them exit visas, the U . N . began to demand that all foreign refugees be released with haste and that the police department in Tianjin would comply as soon as possible. 144 Korean refugees were also a major problem in North China. At the end of the war, there were some 1.5 million Koreans in China. While many had come to China to fight land and staff t he collaboration government. Dismantling Japanese colonialism was an inevitably messy process and a large number of Korean refugees began arriving in Tianjin from Shenyang, however the municipal government wanted to concentrate its charity efforts on its own citizens. Under pressure from U.S. assistance teams, the 142 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000604 - 020, November 15, 1945. 143 TMA, J0002 - 3 - 000213, March 1946. Also see: TMA, J0002 - 3 - 000530, January 1946. 144 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000501 - 070, August 29, 1946. 285 August 6, 1948 cease date. 145 Post w ar Reconstruction - Raising Funds . As a focal point of Nationalist strategy in North China, Tianjin was host to a variety of military forces. These forces often helped provide some of the needed supplies for refugee relief. A military unit organized to suppress bandits, the Dongbei jiao fei zong siling bu zhengwei hui ( ) , sent supplies to help with refugee students who came from Dongbei to Tianjin. 146 The Hebei Provincial Government Headquarters also sent officials to help with the strategic management of refugees. 147 The Guomindang Party office also organized fund drives at local middle schools with various booths and a ball game for teachers and other refugees. 148 Much of the fundraising during this period was directed at assisting veterans of the war against Japan. Although sports had often played a role in fund raising in earlier periods, like the mock Olympics organized by the YMCA, the Tianjin Education Department and local city schools became more active at organizing charity competitions to raise funds for refugees. In order t o do this, t he education department organized several charity basketball competitions in the spring of 1946. 149 While funds were primarily used to 145 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000720 - 019, August 17, 1948. 146 TMA, J0025 - 2 - 002852 - 003, 1945. 147 TMA, J0025 - 3 - 006214 - 003, November 7, 1947. 148 TMA, J0 025 - 3 - 006335, December 3, 1945. 149 TMA, J0110 - 3 - 000783 - 001, March 12, 1946. 286 purchase food and shelter for refugees, the social bureau also provided small cash loans for refugees to start a business at little or no interest. 150 Another cornerstone of postwar reconstruction was trying to send people back to their villages as quickly as possible. 151 This of course proved impractical as the civil war caused an ever greater number of refugees fro m Dongbei to enter the city. In the previous section we discussed some of the problems with th e Japanese repatriation process, b ut refugees were flowing both ways to and from Japan. The Japanese had imported many thousands of Chinese to Japanese mines and factories as forced labor. These laborers returned to Tianjin and combined with unemployed workers, veterans, and other displaced people to swell the number of refugees in the city. The Pingjin Relief and Rehabilitation Administration, Tianjin Branch ( ) [PJRRA] provided some assistance to relocate these refugees to rural areas, but for the most part, this was accomplished by the local government offices. 152 For example, the social bureau n center to the suburbs. 153 Another national organization, the Three Principles Youth League in Tianjin ( ), gained special permission from the municipal government to assist with relocating refugees who came from communist - occupied areas. Fear that communist agents might be among the displaced destitute that made their way to the city prioritized registration and correct identification over individual necessity in relief decisions. 154 This 150 TMA, J0025 - 3 - 006205 - 027, May 1947. 151 TMA, J0219 - 3 - 024964, November 17, 1945. 152 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000513 - 001, April 13, 1946. 153 TMA, J0025 - 3 - 006187 - 026, November 22, 1946. 287 fear also meant that abuse was almost inevitable and the polic e investigated several cases where refugees were beaten by government administrators. 155 The Youth League also assumed some local government responsibilities. For example, an association of unemployed food vendors requested their permission to organize. 156 Pa refugees to be relocated, but these days came and past with little progress made. Instead the numb er of refugees continued to increase. It is not clear if the Tianjin Municipal G overnment had a standing policy about how to send refugees back to their hometowns, so groups of refugees often had to be dealt with on a case by case basis. Sometimes the Tian jin police would act as refugee advocates, requesting funding to provide temporary refugees traveling through Tianjin with travel ing money to cover the cost of their return trip and basic living expenses on the way. 157 cha mber of commerce to pressure private shipping to assist with the relocation of refugees. They set minimum refugee passenger numbers first for all private passenger transports and later for all cargo vessels as well. 158 154 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000513 - 031, September 26, 1946. 155 TMA, J0219 - 1 - 002905, April 1946. 156 TMA, J0025 - 2 - 000399 - 054, October 21, 1946. 157 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000513 - requested permission to issue th ese funds from Mayor Du to cover the expenses of a group of 51 male and 34 female refugees who came from Shanghai and Nanjing, the request was approved. Also see: TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000513 - 024, March 28, 1947. 158 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000747 - 005, May 24, 1948. 288 turn home. In April, 1946 , a group of over 100 refugees began to verbally insult and physically attack relocation officials on a daily basis, they also destroyed public property in protest, making the relocation even more difficult. The PJRRA warned that i f they were not sent back soon, the groups might be infiltrated by communist spies who would agitate for further violence. 159 The concern that communist infiltrators were among the refugees was a point of continual concern both in the refugee camps outside t Several months later , this office began coordinating with the Tianjin police to bar more refugees from entering the city. 160 Besides awakening fear in municipal leaders, the presence of refugees also e licited disgust. Writing to the head of the social bureau, Hu Menghua, Mayor Du everywhere, and that the social bureau needed to do something about it. 161 While the political i nstability after the end of World War II was acute, refugees were given permission to organize in some surprising ways. O n May 17, 1948, the social bureau gave permission to a group of refugees to organize a public protest movement regarding their living c onditions. 162 The PJRRA often complained that refugees were unreasonable and the work of getting them to return home difficult. In a letter to the municipal government, the PJRRA explained: 159 TMA , J0002 - 2 - 000513 - 002, April 13, 1946. 160 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000513 - 007, September 25, 1946. 161 TMA, J0025 - 3 - 006254 - 022, July 15, 1947. 162 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000747 - 002, May 26, 1948. 289 Those vagrants from Shanghai have some unreasonable requests and ar e causing disorder so please pass this message along to the police bureau to quickly put a stop to their activities. According to our headquarters, we are supposed to give refugees assistance and shelter, but these are causing all kinds of problems and ma king unreasonable requests and even physically surround our office. We cannot stop them and cannot reason with them. Even the deputy director of the social bureau came here to try insi st that the Shanghai branch office told them that the relief headquarters promised them a certain amount and now they are in Tianjin and they demand that they be given what they were told. We called the Shanghai office, but they denied making any promises. So this is an extra demand that should be denied. There are so many in Tianjin right now and they are causing all kinds of problems by asking for special treatment. 163 Another reason why refugees were becoming resistant and seeking to avoid government proc essing was the growing emphasis on recruiting refugees to fight the Communists. In the context , there are some interesting documentary contradictions. While reports on refugees in the city are usually in the tens of thousands , when the discussion is about relief hundreds of thousands. This draft system for refugees was implemented, at least in Tianjin, by December, 1946. 164 Problems were not only caused by refugees from outside of Tianjin. The unemployed poor within the city also organized to collectively petition the municipal government for aid. For example, a group of unemployed food vendors organized in the #1 district to demand the social bureau allow them to open a new s treet market in a better part of town. 165 Even when refugees were not directly confrontational, they could be demanding. There are numerous letters sent from individual refugees to the Tianjin 163 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000513 - 025, April 19, 1946. 164 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000553 - 034, December 12, 1946. 165 TMA, J0025 - 2 - 000399 - 045, December 3, 1946. 290 Social Bureau requesting aid or to be given refugee status so tha t they could access relief. 166 Refugees also used their numbers to overwhelm police directives. A district police precinct sent an exasperated letter to the municipal police headquarters to report that it was impossible to keep refugees from spending the ni ght at an abandoned slaughterhouse. 167 Refugees not only organized by their native place , they also organized by common occupation, to collectively agitate for assistance. G roups of fishermen, tailors, menders, and veteran mechanics each sent in requests to be recognized as independent organizations and to be given approval to set up cooperative markets which sold groceries to members at reduced rates. 168 Refugees were also stimulated to collective action when they were denied access to relief. A group of refu gees that arrived in Tianjin from Guizhou were refused recognition as refugees and therefore denied access to supplies and medical care. Rather than make an appeal which emphasized their misery exclusively (although it certainly does this as well), they em phasized their loyalty. This group had chosen to leave their homes so as not to become collaborators government helps some people without question, even those from the communist areas they had been begging on the streets with no assistance. He energetically explains that it was like putting the 30 loyal people he represented to death. At the end of the letter it 166 TMA, December 12, 1946. For example, see letter from refugee Hu Congfang . 167 TMA, J0219 - 3 - 026109, July 12, 1946. 168 TMA, J0025 - 3 - 005907, June 19, 1946. 291 unfair it was that these loyal refugees have been treated like this but when dealing with per background check. Pressure for police and charity workers to separate the deserving poor and the undeserving poor came both from above and below as refugees attempted to make their own cases as to why they should be granted access to the limited resou rces available to refugees. 169 attached copy of the order to Liu to show him that they were neither ignored nor neglected. 170 Some credit must be given that even in the presence of hundreds of thousands of refugees in the city and its suburbs, even relatively small groups of refugees could petition the government and expect some kind of response. In this instance, the response was sent after only about one week. Tianjin was often a waypoint for refugees returning to their homes in Dongbei after escaping to the south. The Tianjin Police D epartment assisted these people by supplying small cash sums , arranging their free transportation, and organizing temporary shelter as they waited for transportation to become available. 171 The police also occasionally appropriated privately owned homes to house refugees. However, they did pay the owners for their u se and took responsibility for any damages caused by the refugees. 172 169 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000513 - 021, March 5, 1947. 170 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000513 - 022, March 12, 1947. 171 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000513 - 015, December 18, 1946. 172 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000513 - 019, December 27, 1946. 292 In the year after the end of the war, temporary aid took many forms. The police working with the PJRRA came up with rules for dealing with the refugees. These rules would be repeatedly r e - emphasized and become increasingly complex as the refugee problem grew. Aid was to be temporary; the police distributed 5000 franks to each refugee which was supposed to provide enough money for 10 days of meals. Regardless of their age, they were issue d one set of clothing. Disabled refugees were sent to the j iujiyuan and the injured were first sent to the hospital and then relocated. Rather than force people to go back to their homes, which many refused , the PJRRA was tasked with finding them employme nt , and the police were charged with maintaining order and arresting troublemakers. 173 As the civil war escalated and the GMD position in North China became increasingly tenuous greater attention was paid to maintaining security among refugee camps which be came a type of native place concentration camps. The central government ordered non - Tianjin refugees to be organized by native place and kept out of the city. Even in the context of heightened security, the local municipal government relied on private busi ness leaders to facilitate, plan, and fund these shelters. 174 Besides businesses and religious charities another i mportant association in citizen - led - funding were the Native Place Associations, Tongxianghui (TXH) , in Tianjin. TXH raised money and conducted charity relie f for people from the same home town. They also built their own shelters both in and outside of the city, some of which were built on city property. 175 However, this of course meant that certain 173 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000513 - 027, May 8, 1946. 174 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000513 - 033, October 11, 1946. 293 associations were more effective than ot hers and that individuals who came from a prosperous native place were more likely to receive assistance. The social bureau required these associations to register with them before conducting any fund raising or distributing relief supplies. For example, t he Taiwanese Association started converting wartime bomb shelters into refugee shelters. 176 Almost every TXH was operating its own refugee shelters in the postwar period with supplies like water purifiers provided by the social bureau. 177 Tianjin Native Place Associations also filled an important and sensitive government role in designing and issuing refugees identification papers. 178 While for the most part, these organizations provided useful leverage for meeting the needs of individual refugees, they too cou ld be the source of exploitation and corruption. For example, a rep resentative from Dongguang County , Ma Minxuan, contacted the head of the Tianjin Social Bureau to report how leaders in the Dongguang TXH had cheated refugees by running away with their sup plies. Since these refugees were supposed to obtain their supplies from the TXH, it became very hard for them to obtain help anywhere else. 179 Directives sent down from the central government to the local city administrators were almost always vague, empty , repetitive, and meaningless, leaving the Tianjin contained in such directives, those sent from Song Ziwen (T. V. Soong), the Premier of 175 TMA, J0025 - 3 - 004231 - 001, September 22, 1947. 176 TMA, J0002 - 3 - 001445, August 1946. 177 TMA, J0025 - 3 - 000785 - 001, July 23, 1947. 178 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000614 - 083, September 4, 1947. 179 TMA, J0025 - 3 - 005054 - 004, 1946. 294 the ROC and other similar comm uniqué , contained certain issues that repeatedly emphasized the enduring and crippling problems the GMD faced. One such remark instructed that anyone who could work, should. In his eleven - point letter points six through nine all emphasize that people with special skills or strong healthy bodies need to be put to work. For all his talk about cooperation and coordination between local and central government, Song places the responsibility for raising funds, organizing civilian groups, and providing relief to refuge e s squarely on local government, although the central government did supply significant funds to the city. 180 One of these priorities was the need for central government offices to work together with local government offices on their refugee policies . As we have seen with the directives of the PJRRA, the central government could accomplish little without relying on local infrastructure to carry out its directives. In his letter to the Tianjin Mayor, Song Ziwen also emphasized the need to think not jus t about the short - term need o f refugees, but also their long - term settlement. There seems to be a palpable sense of frustration in his letter which repeatedly asks everyone to do their job and everyone should be taking responsibility. Besides the obvious e lements of emergency relief such as setting up shelters and building soup kitchens, Song also points out the need to set up secure storage, loans to revitalize the countryside, and educational assistance. As supplies for refugees diminished the social bureau issued commands designed to hinder refugees from accessing aid multiple times. A ll charity food distribution was to be done at the same time each day throughout the city at different locations. 181 The 180 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000513 - 039, September 22, 1946. 181 TMA, J0025 - 3 - 006187 - 033, November 24, 1946. 295 Tianjin Municipal Government also sought to allev iate some of the resource burden by having refugee camps cultivate their own crops. The social bureau provided seeds for these cooperative farms. 182 Although the social bureau often distributed cash along with food to refugees, sometimes it distributed food stamps. These food stamps proved much more valuable for securing aid than cash as hyperinflation meant that cash was effectively worthless. 183 While aid was meant to be temporary, the reality of the situation meant that the shelters set up for refugees oft en began to resemble more traditional institutions for relieving poverty. Refugee s were issued work permits and s helters began installing medical facilities, not just for immunization but also for long - term care. 184 The Tianjin Social Bureau also relied on the China Red Cross to maintain soup kitchens inside refugee camps and around the city. 185 The Red Swastika Society was very active building refugee shelters and negotiated with the municipal government to provide free electricity for cooking at their locati ons. 186 In fact, a Tianjin utility company set up a specific committee for charity work, building and improving infrastructure to the shelters set up around the city. Local Catholic and Protestant churches remained important local sources for volunteers to d istribute relief goods to refugees like the Holy House of Mercy, Rencitang ( ). 187 182 TMA, J0025 - 2 - 002919 - 010, December 5, 1947. 183 Specific amounts of money set aside for relief as donations to a single individual could range between several thous and to several hundred thousand yuan, TMA, J0025 - 3 - 006210 - 020, May 12, 1947. 184 TMA, J0025 - 3 - 006238, April 20, 1946. 185 TMA, J0025 - 3 - 006321, December 13, 1946. 186 TMA, J0025 - 3 - 006266 - 004, December 27, 1947. 296 takeover , Tianjin faced sustained instability and martial law. Besides having to develop temporary relief for tens of thousands of refugees fleeing contested areas, each city district was required to keep 50 stretchers ready in case of enemy attack in shelters specifically for local residents who might be effected by the fighting. The city was divided into ten districts and local police were assisted by military police. 188 When Cangxian County was attacked suddenly in July 1947, government clerks and school faculty had to flee to the city with almost nothing including their identification pap ers. This represented a problem that would repeat time and again before the end of the war. How to identify loyal refugees from communist infiltrators? Numerous plans were concocted to issue IDs to refugees, however , this was largely in effective. Often t he IDs expired only a few days after they were issued. 189 IDs represented so much more than just information about a refugee s place of origin, affiliations and vital statistics. They were a stamp of moral approval and declaration of loyalty, a means for sep arating the good people from the bad people. 190 In the identification document below, the processing agent would list the date the refugee was oppressed by the Communist Party and became a refugee, if the individual is loyal to the Guomindang, the ID also verified that they were if you were actually a communist agent. 187 TMA, J0025 - 3 - 006215 - 013, August 11, 1947. 188 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000613 - 100, October 24, 1947. 189 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000614 - 060, July 16, 1947. 190 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000614 - 062, July 11, 1947. 297 Figure 4.9: (Left, Middle, and Right) Guomindang ID Program. 191 Fear that communist spies might infiltrate refugee groups was not misplaced, especially as county government offic ials reported whole boxes of un issued IDs disappearing. 192 Many of the refugees who came to Tianjin in the fall of 1947 were f l eeing communist land reform policies that put whole families to public humiliation and death. 193 Sometimes the explanations given by the police to the office were quite explicit, describing how blood was everywhere in the countryside and young men were kidnapped and forced to do terrible things until they escaped to Tianjin and began wandering around. 194 At times, the pressure of dealing with refugees and the treatment of communist take - over seemed to have pushed the municipal government towards the ludicrous. Desperate requests to all non - govern ment charity organizations to help identify strategies for not just assisting the influx of refugees coming from communist occupied areas, but 191 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000614 - 064, July 7, 1947. 192 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000614 - 069, July 24, 1947. 193 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000614 - 082, August 25 , 1947. 194 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000614 - 098, November 8, 1947. 298 demonstrating to them the government s love for her people. 195 The only major change that was put into effect was t hat all refugees were required to go through processing before they could come to the city, even those with family members already living in Tianjin. However, this idea of spreading the love becomes increasingly apparent in the document record as the Nationalist hold on the city became progressively perilous. In a request from the Tianjin office to the central government, the author exclaims: we find some way to help the refugees, how can we say the government cares for them 196 Yet, at the same time, the city was becoming less open to those fleeing the perils of land reform and class struggle. By July 1947 all registration was moved to the city gate to keep refugees out of the city until they were processed. Non - Tianjin res idents, if they were not immediately sent back, they were ushered to camps located outside of the city limits. 197 By January 1948, refugee provisions reached new heights of inadequacy. While they were providing daily assistance for some 30,000 re fugees, there were an estimated 80,000 refugees in the city and several hundred thousand additional refugees from Dongbei in settlements around the city. 198 When the Chinese communists liberated the city on a frigid January day in 1949, they assumed control over what had been the economic heart of Northern China since the Xinhua Revolution, but it was also a city of displaced refugees seeking economic shelter . 195 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000671 - 001, February 19, 1947. 196 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000671 - 004, March 15, 1947. 197 TMA, J0026 - 2 - 000079 - 003, July 7, 1947. 198 TMA, J0002 - 2 - 000211 - 015, 1948. 299 Conclusion . Three decades of Maoist rule in China sought to eliminate the multiple, ) meant that self - sacrifice was valuable as long as it r communism, private philanthropy was regarded as suspect, because it both suggested the language describing those displaced by poverty also fundamentally changed. There we re no more refugees, nanmin , only wandering people that needed to be settled. 199 The recently published work of several well - respected scholars including Frank Dik tter, Felix Wemheuer, and Kimberley Ens Manning among others have begun to decipher the political context of the tragic death of some 30 to 45 million people during the Three Years of Great Famine ( ) from 1959 - 1961. 200 Their emphasis on government as , and Famine Politics in Maoist China . More contextual building is needed as information about this period has long been suppressed and only recently, government documents have become available illuminating the policy history of this period. 199 After 1949 the term refugee, nanmin, almost completely disappears from the Tianjin archival record. 200 For discussion of this famine see: Frank Dik tter, Mao's Great Famine: The History of China's Most Devastating Catastrophe, 1958 - 1962 (New York: Walke r & Co., 2010), also, see: Felix Wemheuer and Kimberley Ens Manning, Eating Bitterness: New Perspectives on China's Great Leap Forward and Famine ( Vancouver: UBC Press, 2011) , and Felix Wemheuer, Famine Politics in Maoist China and the Soviet Union ( New Ha ven and London: Yale University Press, 2014). 300 policy directives, have taken a decidedly different approach by directing their focus on how local officials interpreted and acted out Beijing mandates. 201 Much more research that emphasizes individual identity and experience is still needed as little is yet known about how motivations for social responsibility and values such as mercy, generosity, and public giving changed during this period. While post - r eform China, has brought unprecedented levels of wealth, and lifted many from the desperation of abject poverty, the continued suppression of scholarly criticism and journalistic investigation of modern catastrophes, protection of government exploitation o f the poor, and weariness over the formation of any autonomously organized civilian groups, means that philanthropy remains a contested space in contemporary China. Police harassment of Ai Weiwei after he drew attention to the students killed by poorly c onstructed schools; the continual prosecution of activists protesting the demolition of poor urban housing; the low percentage of registered charities in China that meet basic international standards for transparency and disclosure; the recent arrests of s ome 270 human rights lawyers in August 2015, all confirm that the Beijing government recognizes and fears the latent power of civil society. 202 However, government attempts to downplay human suffering and the languid growth of contemporary philanthropy amon 201 - Urban Divide in Twentieth - of California, San Diego, 2008). 202 Forbes Asia , May 30, 2014, http://www.forbes.com/sites/yanzhonghuang/2014/05/30/why - has - philanthropy - failed - to - take - off - in - china/. 301 from the broader society, particularly within Chinese social media. This divergence has My study advances current scholarship in several critical ways. First, it shows that within some of the most militant forms of modernization, from the displacement of traditional guilds by the chamber of commerce to the replacement of the Qing Bannermen by a natio nalized police force, traditional concepts of benevolence and social responsibility remained relevant and continued to inform institutional responses to disaster and relief. Secondly, the dissertation diverges sharply from scholarship that sees Chinese na tionalism as primarily the product of failed Japanese colonialism by emphasizing how the influence of international shaming and expectations for social welfare provision was both stimulated and unmet by modern Nationalist discourse. While we cannot separa te the development of Chinese nationalism from international political conflict, we must likewise acknowledge that it derives from sources that are multiple and often conflicting, and that these varied origins functioned to produce divergences within natio nal identity. By arguing for a nationalism that is multiple, simultaneous, and as imagined or construed. 203 The dissertation also challenges the interpretation of nationalis t urban reformers as uniformly following Western models of modernization by emphasizing some of the conflicts that emerged between Chinese and Western philanthropists. 204 203 Prasenjit Duara, Rescuing History from the Nation: Questioning Narratives of Modern China (Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 1996). 302 By identifying and examining several of the primary motivations that supported philan thropic giving throughout the Republican Period, I conclude that by conveying a sense of public rectitude, philanthropy provided a powerful source of legitimacy to both state and non - state actors. While the ethical values of self - sacrifice and the promotio n and maintenance of social stability have deep roots in both Chinese Confucian and Buddhist traditions, unprecedented levels of wealth inequality and competition among numerous would - be ruling authorities, meant the particular legitimacy conveyed through an altruistic identity was critical in the socio - political confusion of this period. 205 This dissertation has argued that competition for moral credibility was a significant backdrop for individual attempts to define effective governance. Furthermore, the dissertation argues that philanthropic work in Republican China provided an important institutional experience for training civil administrators. Not everyone, after all, could study at the Whampoa Military Academy in Guangzhou. United charity organizati ons and emergency relief meetings threw hard - nosed GMD officers together with municipal government officials, bright eyed foreign missionaries, gown - clad village gentry, local press barons, and nouveau riche compradors each with their own opinions on effec tive governance and motivations for promoting the social welfare. My research joins with the work of several recent urban histories of China, like that of Kristin Stapleton, that collectively argue political fragmentation gave rise to numerous factions exe rting their influence to bring stability to the city in the absence of unified 204 The volume, Remaking the Chinese City , largely suggests that at least within the context of urban planning, urban leaders followed Western models, see: Joseph Esherick, Remaking the Chinese City: Modernity and National Identity, 1900 - 1950 (Honolulu: University of Hawaii Press, 2000), 7. 205 information on the sixteen kinds of almsgiving practiced by the wujinzang yuan s ect ( ). 303 government administration. The careful analysis of internal municipal government communications in this study further invites trans - national comparative research on the importa nce of philanthropy in other modernizing societies as a context for emerging civil governance. After 1949, how the individual related to society radically changed. Rather than alleviating inequality through the continual individually motivated redistrib ution of wealth, Maoist interpretation of Marxist ideology stressed the value of unified labor and state enforced economic equality. An ethics of collective interest and self - reliance claimed supremacy over narratives of suffering and criticism of state in stitutions was completely suppressed. While urban cooperatives did organize mutual aid provisions for those with a temporary disability, long - term assistance was seen as a threat to the socialist work ethic and primarily the responsibility of family netwo rks. 206 This internalization of welfare responsibility directed to the family unit has had incredible implications for contemporary Chinese society and deserves much greater attention. In 1978, the Deng Xiaoping administration launched a program of economic reforms, Gaige Kaifang ( ˙iMŽ ), aimed at establishing a socialist market economy. Although its policies have undergone several stages of reform over the past three decades, its basic p rinciples remain in effect today. Unlike other post - communist regimes where radical economic reforms followed the collapse of single party rule, the Chinese Communist Party has retained relative 206 For a discussion of Chinese welfare policy during the Mao period, see: John E. Dixon, The Chinese Welfare System, 1949 - 1979 (New York, NY: Praeger, 1981). 304 political continuity, a continuity which, by and large, has define the acceptable limits of moral conscience and public virtue. authority to define the borders of acceptable social relations, the growt h of independent voluntary associations in contemporary China continues to diversify the motivations for responding to problems of inequality, vulnerability, and exploitation. Ultimately, this study has sought to demonstrate that philanthropy as a social r esponsibility conveys much more than the direct aid given to the suffering. Philanthropy represents an important locus for negotiating power and legitimacy, and has consequently been a territory of contention throughout Chinese history. 305 BIBLIOGRAPHY 306 BIBLIOGRAPHY Far Eastern Survey 15, no. 22 (1946) : 341 - 344. Asia and the Americas . Asia: The American Magazine on the Orient . Bai Childhood 12, no. 1 (2005): 9 - 32. Bai Zheng ji baodingjun fenqu yuan fu siling Zang Fenghua . 9ÛF…˚†˜¶˝− [Remembering Baoding army commander Zang Zhonghuagui . November 5, 2012. Bao Lufang Beijing fanzui wenti de 80 nian duibi yanjiu - L˚NÈ,´ 80 [Urban Adaptation and Rural Migrants Crime - A Nongye Daxue Xuebao, Sh ehuike Xueban 24, no. 4 (Dec ember 2007). Barrett, David P., and Lawrence N. Shyu. Chinese Collaboration with Japan, 1932 - 1945: the Limits of Accommodation . Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 2001. Barsky, Allan Edward. Ethics and Values in Social Work an Integrated Approach for a Comprehensive Curriculum . Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2010. Law & Society Review 30, no. 3 (1996): 585 - 606. Beasley, W. G. Japanese Imperia lism, 1894 - 1945 . Oxford [Oxfordshire]: Clarendon Press, 1987. Beiyang Huabao . . Bernhardt, Kathryn, Philip C. Huang, and Mark A. Allee. Civil Law in Qing and Republican China. Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 1994. 307 Bi Mu . Minguo shiqi Shandong chengshi xiaceng shehui bianqian yanjiu ˝&˛O [The Study of Urban Underclass Change of Shandong in the Period of the Republic of China]. PhD diss., Shandong daxue, Zhongguo Jinxiandaishi, 2012. Boyle, John Hunter. China and Ja pan at War, 1937 - 1945; The Politics of Collaboration . Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 1972. Proceedings of the American Philosophical Society 149, no. 2 (2005): 134. Brook, Timothy. Collab oration: Japanese Agents and Local Elites in Wartime China . Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 2005. - Urban Divide in Twentieth - Diss. University of California, San Diego, 2008. Bunker, Gerald E. The Peace Conspiracy: Wang Ching - Wei and the China War, 1937 - 1941 . Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 1972. Burke Library Archives, Columbia University Libraries, Union Theological Seminary, New York. China Continuation Committee Records , 1912 - 1922. The Burke Library Archives at Columbia University, Union Theological Seminary, New York. National Christian Council of China Records, 1919 - 1950. Alternatives: Global, Local, Political 29, no.2 (2004): 119 - 218, http://www.jstor.org/stable/40645112. luctuation in Jiangsu and Zhejiang Provinces and Local Government Countermeasures]. Ming Qing Lun Cong [A Collection of Essays on the Ming and Qing Dynasties]. Zhonggong Zhongyang Dangxiao Wenshibu,Tianjin Jinnanqu Shuangyang Zhen Dangwei Bangongshi, 2011. Chang, Maria Hsia. The Chinese Blue Shirt Society: Fascism and Developmental Nationalism . Berkeley, CA: Institute of East Asian Studies, University of California - Berkeley, Center for Chinese Studies, 1985. Chen, Janet. Guilty of Indigence: The Ur ban Poor in China, 1900 - 1953. Princeton, N J: Princeton University Press, 2012. 308 Policies During the Beiyang Government Period) Heze Xueyuan Xuebao 28, no. 1 (Feb. 2006): 86 - 89. Chen Zhongping . Lower Yangzi Region. Modern China 27, no. 2 (April, 2001): 155 - 201. Cheung Siu Keung . Marginalization in China: Recasting Minority Politics . New York: Palgrave Macmillan, 2009. Chiang Mayling Soong (Mme. Chiang Kai - shek). China Shall Rise Again . New Journal of the Royal Society of Arts 71, no. 3690 (1923): 670 - 71. The Chinese Repository . Christian Advocate . Collaboration, 1937 - Chinese Collaboration with Japan, 1932 - 194 5: The Limits of Accommodation , ed ited by David P. Barrett and Lawrence N. Shyu, 135 - 55. Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 2001. _____. The Shanghai Capitalists and the Nationalist Government, 1927 - 1937 . Cambridge, MA: Council on East Asian Studies, Harvard University, 1980. Culp, Robert Joseph. Articulating Citizenship: Civic Education and Student Politics in Southeastern China, 1912 - 1940 . Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Asia Center, 2007. History and Archives Proj Collection, St. Paul, MN. (1976). Dik tter, Frank. The Age of Openness: China before Mao . Berkeley: University of California Press, 2008. _____. Mao's Great Famine: The History of China's Most Devastating Catastrophe, 1958 - 1962 . New York: Walker & Co., 2010. #UAŒ Security in the Late Qing]. Tianjin Shehui Kexueyuan Lishi Yanjiusuo, 2013. 309 Ding Weiping salvation movemen t and the women to oppose Japan] Jilin daxue, shehui kexue xuebao . June 30, 1993. Dixon, John E. The Chinese Welfare System, 1949 - 1979 . New York, NY : Praeger , 1981 . Di Xudan . Jindai Shanghai shehui fuli zhidu yanjiu, 1927 - 1937 [A Study on the Modern Shanghai Social Welfare System ] PhD diss., Huadong zhengfa daxue, falushi, 2013. Dagongbao . Dray - - Modern China 33, no. 3 (2007): 349 - 76. Duara, Prasenjit. Culture, Power, and the State: Rural North China, 1900 - 1942 . Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 1988. - Journal of World History 12, no. 1 (2001): 111 - 18. _____. Rescuing History from the Nation: Questioning Narratives of Modern China . Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 1996. China Mission Yearbook 1924 , editor in chief Rev Frank Rawlinson, D.D., 28 - 31. Shanghai: Christian Literature Society, 1924. f the Eighteen - Christian Advocate , (March 15, 1923): 327 - 28 . Asia: The American Magazine on the Orient 21, no. 6 (1921): 538. Administrative Theory & Praxis 28, no. 4 (2006): 586 - 92. Elman, Benjamin A. A Cultural History of Civil Examinations in Late Imperial China . Berkeley: University of California Press, 2000. Esherick, Joseph. Remaking the Chinese City: Modernity and National Identity, 1900 - 1950 Far Eastern Fortnightly . 310 Far Eastern Survey . Fitzgerald, John, and Yongxiang Qian. The Dignity of Nations: Equality, Competition, and Honor in East Asian Nationalism . Hong Kong: Hong Kong University Press, 2006. Michigan Law Review 97, no. 4 (Feb. 1999): 843 - 930. Foreign Missionary Activities, Box 1., Henry D. Jones Pap ers, Bentley Historical Library, University of Michigan. History Workshop Journal 50, (Autumn 2000): 22 - 44. Freeman, John Ripley . The Grand Canal of China: Addresses at a Dinner given in Honor of John R. Freeman by Joseph Ripley and at a Dinner given by Chin Yun - P ng, Hsiung Hsi - Ling, Pan Fu, and Ven Chih - yi. Tientsin: Printed by North China Star, 1919. Fu, Poshek. Passivity, Resistance, and Collaboration: Intellectual Choices in Occupied Shanghai, 1937 - 1945 . Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 1993. Fu Yanhong . dai Tian j in cheng shi pinminjie ceng de xing chengji qi shi dai xing yuan yin, [ Reasons for the Formati Shixue yuekan, (2013): 77 - 90+96. Fuller, Pierre. "North China Famine Revisited: Unsung Native Relief in the Warlord Era, 1920 - 1921." Modern Asian Studies 47, no. 3 (2013): 820 - 850. Ge Baosen - [Research of 2008. Gillin, Donald G. Warlord: Yen Hsi - shan in Shansi Province, 1911 - 1949 . Princeton, NJ: Pri nceton University Press, 1967. Gifford, Rob. China Road: A Journey into the Future of a Rising Power . New York: Random House, 2007. Goldstein, Joshua. Drama Kings: Players and Publics in the Re - creation of Peking Opera, 1870 - 1937. Berkeley: University of California Press, 2007. Gongchandang yuan . 311 Modern China 21, no.4 (1995): 387 - 419. Goodman, Bryna, and Wendy Larson. Gender in Motion: Divisions of Labor and Cultural Change in Late Imperial and Modern China . Lanham, MD: Rowman & Littlefield Publishers, 2005. Gregg, A. Henrietta. China and Educational Autonomy: The Changing Role of the Protestant Educational Missionary in China, 1807 - 1937. Syracuse, NY: Syracuse University Press, 1946. Grove, Linda, and Christian Daniels. State and Society in China: Japanese Perspectives on Ming - Qing Social and Economic History. Tokyo: University of Tokyo Press , 1984. Grypma, Sonya. Healing Henan: Canadian Nurses at the North China Mission , 1888 - 1947 . Vancouver, BC, CAN: UBC Press, 2008. Gunn, Edward M. Unwelcome Muse: Chinese Literature in Shanghai and Peking, 1937 - 1945 . New York: Columbia University Pres s, 1980. Guo, Xuezhi. China's Security State: Philosophy, Evolution, and Politics . Cambridge, NY: Cambridge University Press, 2012. Guoji Laogong Tongxun . - Reset DOC. Last modified September 16, 2008. http://www.resetdoc.org/story/00000000926 . European Journal of Philosophy 14, no. 1 (2006): 1 - 25. Hayford, Charles Wishart. To the People: James Yen and Village China . New York: Columbia University Press, 1990. Hayot, Eric. The Hypothetical Mandarin: Sympathy, Modernity, and Chinese Pain . Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2009. He Hongtao . Qingmo jingcha zhidu yanjiu , 1894 - 1911 , 1894 - 1911 [Study on the Police System in Late Qing, 1894 - 1911]. PhD diss., Xinan zhengfa daxue, xianfa yu xingzheng faxue, 2011. He,Wenping. "The Street Corps of Changsha around 1920." Journal of Modern Chinese History 8, no. 1 (2014): 63 - 86. 312 Heeren, J Asia and the Americas 21 , no. 6 (1921): 540 - 44. Hershatter, Gail. Dangerous Pleasures Prostitution and Modernity in Twentieth - Century Shanghai . Berkeley: University of California Press, 1997. _____. Women in Ch ina's Long Twentieth Century . Berkeley: Global, Area, and International Archive, 2007. _____. The Workers of Tianjin, 1900 - 1949. Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 1986. Hessler, Peter. Country Driving: A Chinese Road Trip . New York: Harper Perennial, 2011. Hou Yawei ˙† [Save people, save self, and save the world: The origins and cause of the Tianjin Red Swastika Shijie zongjiao wenhua . March, 2012. Huang, Xiyi. Power, Entitlement, and Social Practice: Resource Distribution in North China Villages . Hong Kong: Chinese University Press, 2007. Jacka, Tamara, Andrew B. Kipnis, and Sally Sargeson. Contemporary China: Society and Social Change . Cambridge; New York: Cambridge University Press, 2013. State, Society and Governance in Republican China . Ed ited by. Leutner M echthild, and Izabella Goikhman, Zweigniederlassung Zurich and Berlin Germany: Lit Verlag, 2014. School Regulations Against American Missionary Sch Papers Relating to the Foreign Relations of the United States 1928 , no. 2 (1943): 570 - 73. Kalberg, Stephen . The American Journal of Sociology 85, no. 5 (March, 1980): 1145 - 1179. Katz, Michael B. The Undeserving Poor: America's Enduring Confrontation with Poverty: Fully Updated and Revised. Oxford, NY: Oxford University Press, 2013. Kirby, William C. Germany and Republican China. Sta nford, CA: Stanford University Press, 1984. 313 _____. "Images and Realities of Chinese Fascism." In Fascism Outside Europe: The European Impulse Against Domestic Conditions in The Diffusion of Global Fascism , edited by Stein Ugelvik Larsen, 233 68. New York: Columbia University Press, 2001. Kwan Journal of Urban History 27, no. 1 (2000): 27 - 75. _____. The Salt Merchants of Tianjin: State - Making and Civil Society in Late Imperial China . Honolulu, HI: University of Hawaii Press, 2001. Lanza, Fabio. Behind the Gate: Inventing Students in Beijing . New York: Columbia University Press, 2010. Lam Comparative Studies in Society and History 52, no. 4 (2010): 881 - 908. Leutner, Mechthild, and Izabella Goikhman. State, Society and Governance in Republican China . Berlin: Lit, 2014. Li Guangwei . guochen [Republian Shandong Dao shifan daxue lishi whenhua yu shehui fazhan xueyuan. Shandong, Jinan, 2008. Li, Lillian M. Fighting Famine in North China: State, Market, and Environmental Decline, 1690s 1 990s. Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 2007. Li Mingzhu. Tianjin yu ta de Fudi [Tianjin and its Mansions]. Tianjin Shehui Kexueyuan Chubanshe, 2002. Li Yan . the National Government in the Anti - History and Culture, 2013. Liang Jiagui de shijie hongwanzihui li : [Turbulent period of civil society organizations and relief: The shifan xueyuan wan bei wenhua yanjiu zhongxin. Anhui, Fuyang, 2012. under Chen Jitang, 1929 - Modern China 30, no. 2, (2004): 151 - 98. 314 Lincoln, Toby. "Fleeing from Firestorms: Government, Cities, Native Place Associations and Refugees in the Anti - Japanese War of Resistance." Urban History 38, no. 3 (2011): 437 - 56. Lipkin, Zwia. Useless to the State: "Social Problems" and Social Engineering in Nationalist Nanjing, 1927 - 1937 . Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Asia Center, 2006. Lo ckhart, William. The Medical Missionary in China: A Narrative of Twenty Years' Experience. London: Hurst and Blackett, 1861. Lu, Hanchao. Street Criers: A Cultural History of Chinese Beggars . Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 2005. Ma Yi Pœ8ª . Tianjin xinwen chuanbo shi gangyao [An outline history of the spread of Tianjin news media]. Yi Beijing: Xinhua chubanshe, 2005. MacKinnon, Stephen R. Power and Politics in Late Imperial China: Yuan Shi - kai in Beijing and Tianjin, 1901 - 1908 . B erkeley, CA: University of California Press, 1980. The Maitland Daily Mercury . Mallory, Walter H. China: Land of Famine. New York, NY: American Geographical Society , 1926. Mann, Susan. Local Merchants and the Chinese Bureaucracy, 1750 - 1950 . Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 1987. Social Work 43, no. 1 (1998): 34 - 41. Maynard, Isabelle. China Dreams: Growing Up Jewish in Tientsin. Iowa City: Universi ty of Iowa Press, 1996. The China Journal 70, (July 2013): 48 - 72. Millard's Review of the Far East . Min Tian. China's Greatest Operatic Male Actor of Female Roles: Documenting the Life and Art of Mei Lanfang, 1894 - 1961. Lewiston, NY: Edwin Mellen Press, 2010. 315 Minguo shiqi qikan quanwen shujuku, 1911 - 1949 [Republican era full text periodical database] (electronic resource). Series 1 - 6. Quanguo baokan suoyin [National newspaper and periodical index]. Bianjibu, Shanghai tu qing xinxi youxian go ngsi zhuban. 2010 - 2012 (MGQK). Mitter , Rana . - 1945 . Boston: Houghton Mifflin Harcourt. 2013 . _____. The Manchurian Myth: Nationalism, Resistance and Collaboration in Modern China . Berkeley: University of California Press, 2000. Monthly Labor Review . Morvaridi, Behrooz. "The Politics of Philanthropy and Welfare Governance: The Case of Turkey." The European Journal of Development Research 25, no. 2 (2013): 305 - 21. Nankai University Library, Nankai Daxue Tushuguan , . Nankai Shuangzhou . New York Times . The North - China Herald and Supreme Court & Consular Gazette. Osnos, Evan. Age of Ambition: Chasing Fortune, Truth, and Faith in the New China . New York: Farrar, Straus and Giroux, 2014. The Pacific Unitarian . Peking Daily News . Peking Gazette . The Peking & Tientsin Times . Political Science Quarterly . Modern China 30, no. 2 (2004): 199 - 227. zongjiao de lishi yu xianzhuang [ The History and Current S Tianjin Shehui Kexueyuan Zhexue Yanjiusuo, 2001. 316 Qingdao Municipal Gazetteer. Qingdao Tebieshi Zhengfu Shizheng Gongbao . Rankin, Mary Backus. Elite Activism and Political Transformation in China: Zhejiang Province, 1865 - 1911 . Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 1986. Ren Yunlan . Jindai Tianjin de cishan yu s hehui j iuji /n #~ [Charity and Social Relief in Modern Tianjin]. Tianjin Renmin Chubanshe, 2007. 1936 "A [ Natural Calamity in North China and Tianjin Grain Market in the Period of Republic Zhongguo Nongshi 2, (2006): 69 - 77. zhanluan qijian Tianjin chengshi de shehui jiuzhu, 1912 - 1936 [Tianjin Urban Relief of Famine and War during the Republican Period, 1912 - 1936]. Zhongguo shehui jingjishi yanjiu Tianjin shehui kexueyuan, lishi yanjiusuo. Vol. 2. 2005. __ Calamity of North China (1903 - 1936): The Relation between State and Society in Lishi Yuekan 4, Tianjin: Tianjin Shehui Kexueyuan Lishisuo, 2 006. Reeves, Caroline Beth. "The Power of Mercy: The Chinese Red Cross Society, 1900 - 1937." Order No. 9832302, Harvard University, 1998. - Modern China 33, no. 4 (2007): 423 - 61. - Port China." 8 no. 4 (1997): 54 - 90. _____. Hygienic Modernity: Meanings of Health and Disease in Treaty - Port China. Berkeley, CA: University of Califor nia Press, 2004. The Journal of Asian Studies 34, no.3 ( 1975 ): 689 715. Rosenlee, Li - Hsiang Lisa. Confucianism and Women a Philosophical Interpretation . Albany: State University of New York Press, 2006. - 20, 1924. 317 International, Minneapolis, MN, June 18 - 22, 1928. - Fourth Annual Convention of Rotary International, Detroit, MI, U.S.A., June 25 - 29, 1934. Rowe, William T. Hankow: Commerce and Society in a Chinese City, 1796 - 1889 . Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 1984. _____. Hankow: Conflict and Community in a Chinese City, 1796 - 1895 . Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 1989. Saari, Jon L. Legacies of Childhood: Growing up Chinese in a Time of Crisis, 1890 - 1920. Cambridge, MA: Council on East Asian Studies, Harvard University, 1990. Journal of Social Philosophy 30 no. 1 ( 1999) : 147 - 60. Schenking, J. Charles. The Great Kanto Earthquake and the Chimera of National Recons truction in Japan . New York, NY: Columbia University Press, 2013. Schoppa, R. Keith. In a Sea of Bitterness Refugees during the Sino - Japanese War . Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 2011. Literary Digest 63, no. 6 (1919): 25 - 6. Scott, David. China and the International S ystem, 1840 - 1949: Power, Presence, and Perceptions in a Century of Humiliation . Albany, NY: State University of New York Press, 2008. Shenbao . Sheridan, James E. China in Disintegration: The Republican Era in Chinese History, 1912 - 1949. London: Collier Macmillan Free Press, 1975. Hazards and Intergovernmental Finan ce in Eighteenth and Nineteenth Century The Journal of Economic History 64, no. 1 (2004): 100 - 24. Shue, Vivienne. "The Quality of Mercy: Confucian Charity and the Mixed Metaphors of Modernity in Tianjin." Modern China 32, no. 4 (2006): 411 - 52. Simon, Karla W. Civil society in China the Legal Framework from Ancient Times to the New Reform Era . Oxford UK: Oxford University Press, 2013. 318 Smith, Joanna Handlin. The Art of Doing Good: Charity in Late Ming China . Berkeley, CA: University of California Press, 2009. Solinger, Dorothy J. Contesting Citizenship in Urban China: Peasant Migrants, the State, and the Logic of the Market . Berkeley: University of California Press, 1999. Song, Anna. Youtairen zai Tianjin [The Jews in Tianjin] . Beijing: Wu zhou chuanbo chubanshe, 2004. Song Meiyun. Jindai Tianjin Shanghui [The Modern Tianjin Chamber of Commerce] . Tianjin Shehui Kexueyuan Chubanshe, 2002. Stapleton, Kristin Eileen. Civilizing Chengdu: Chinese Urban Reform, 1895 - 1937 . Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Asia Center, 2000. Strand, David. Rickshaw Beijing: City, People, and Politics in the 1920s . Berkeley: University of California Press, 1989. Strauss, Julia C. Strong Institutions in Weak Polities: State Building in Republican China, 1927 - 1940 . Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1998. Su Minqiang Tui guang huangren: qingji Tianjin guanrentang ji qi furu cishan sheye yanjiu [Promotion Empero - Research on Tianjin Guangren Tang and its Women and Children Charities in the End of Qing Dynasty] diss., Nankai daxue, zhongguo jinxiandiashi, 2012. Tabohashi, Kiyoshi. Kindai nissen kankei no kenky .D0¦ [A Study of Modern Day Korean Relations] T ky : Munetaka Shob , 1972. Thøgersen, Stig. A County of Culture: Twentieth - Century China Seen from the Village Schools of Zouping, Shandong. Ann Arbo r: University of Michigan Press, 2002. Tianjin Insti tute of Social Science Research. Tianjinshi Kexueyuan . Tianjin Municipa l Archives. Tianjinshi Danganguan ( TMA) . Tianjin Municipal Gazetteer. Tianjin Shizheng Gongbao (SZGB). Tianjinshi Danganguan, Tianjin Shehui Kexueyuan, and Tianjinshi Gongshang ye Lianhehui. Tianjin Shanghui Dangan Huibian, 1903 - 1911 (The Archival Records of the Tianjin Chamber of Commerce) . Vol. 1 Tianjinshi: Tianjin Renmin Chubanshe, 1989. 319 ______. Tianjin Shanghui Dangan Huibian, 1912 - 1928 (The Archival Records of the Tianjin Chamber of Commerce) . Vol. 2 Tianjin shi: Tianjin Renmin Chubanshe, 1992. Times (London) . Swann, Sebastian. Japan's Imperial Dilemma in China: The Tientsin Incident, 1939 1940 . Routledg e, 2008. Ideologists: He Qi (Ho Kai, 1859 - 1914) and Hu Liyuan (1847 - Modern China 7, no. 2 (1981): 191 - 225. Tsu Yu Yue. The Spirit of Chinese Philanthropy; a Study in Mutual Aid . New York: Columbia University, 1912. United China Relief Records, Manuscripts and Archives Division, The New York Public Library. Astor, Lenox and Tilden Foundations, Manuscripts and Archives Division. MssCol 3078. United States Department of State, Papers relating to the Foreign Relations of the United States. (1900 - 1949 consulted) . http://digicoll.library.wisc.edu/cgi - bin/FRUS/FRUS - idx?type=browse&scope=FRUS.FRUS1 (accessed 2015). Wakeman, Frederic E., and Richard L. Edmonds. Reappraising Republican China . Oxford: Oxford University Press . 2000. Shanghai . Becoming Chinese: Passages to Modernity and Beyond , edited by Wen - Hsin Yeh, 298 - 339. Berkeley: University of California Press, 2000. _____. Policing Shanghai 1927 - 1937. Berkeley, CA: University of California Press, 1995. ______. The China Quarterly 150, (1997): 395 - 432. Wang Dong. Managing God's Higher Learning: U.S. - China Cultural Encounter and Canton Christian College (Lingnan University) 1888 - 1952. Lanham, MD: Lexington Books, 2007. Wang Hongge )»4Ò˚l [The Study on Grain Control Policy of the National Government in the Anti - Japanese War]. Shi, 2013. 320 Wang Osiris 17. (2002): 291 322, http://www.jstor.org/stable/3655275. Weber, Max, Tony Waters, and Dagmar Waters . Weber's Rationalism and Modern Society: New Translations on Politics, Bureaucracy, and Social Stratification . New York: Palgrave Macmillan, 2015. Wei Liansheng . Yu Fengzhi: Zhang Xueliang jiang jun fu ren : [Yu Fengzhi: The wife of Zhang Xueliang] Beijing: Hua wen chubanshe, 2005. Wemheuer, Felix, and Kimberley Ens Manning. Eating Bitterness: New Perspectives on China's Great Leap Forward and Famine , Vancouver: UBC Press, 2011. Wemheuer, Felix. Famine P olitics in Maoist China and the Soviet Union . New Haven and London : Yale University Press, 2014. Wiest, Jean - - Vincent Lebbe 1877 - Biographical Dictionary of Chinese Christianity . 2005 - 2012. Accessed May 5, 2015. http://www.bdcconline. net/en/ stories/l/lebbe - fredericvincent.php. Will, Pierre - Etienne. Bureaucracy and Famine in Eighteenth - Century China. Stanford, CA: Stanford University Press, 1990. Williams, C. Peter. The Ideal of the Self - governing Church: A Study in Victorian Missionary St rategy . Leiden, NY: E.J. Brill, 1990. China Oral History and Archives Collection, St. Paul, MN, 1976. Xin Qingnian . Xiong, Xiling. The General Policy of the Chinese Government. Peking: Printed by The Peking Daily News, 1913. Xu Daofu. Zhongguo j indai n ongye s hengchan ji m aoyi t ongji z iliao . [Chinese Modern Agricultural Production and Trade Statistics] Shanghai: Shanghai r enmin c hubanshe, 1983. Xu, Guoqi. Strangers on the Western Front: Chinese Workers in the Great War . Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 2011. 321 YMCA Box 94 China Industrial Work Misc, Reports 1923 - 1935. Kautz Family YMCA Archives. University of Minnes ota Libraries. Yan Xishan. Comments on the White Paper. A Speech Delivered to the Standing Committee of the Chinese Anti - Aggression League on August 10th, 1949 . Place of publication not identified: Chinese Anti - Aggression League, 1949. _____. A Draft Declaration of the International of Universal Harmony . Taipei: Fu Hsing Press, 1954. _____. How to Prevent Warfare and Establish a Foundation of World Unity (a Proposal to the M.R.A. World Assembly) . Taipei: Fu Hsing Press, 1952. _____. . Yan Xishan zao nian hui yi lu [The early memoirs of Yan Xishan] . Taibeishi: Zhuanji wenxue chubanshe, 1968. j ituan de z henzai j iuji z hengce: Yi Zhili z henfuju wei kaocha zhongxin [Late Qing and Beiyang Government Relief Policy:According to the Zhili Relief Bureau Investigation Center] Lanzhou Xuekan 6 (2011): 186 - 190. Yen Ching - American Journal of Sociology 40 no. 3 (1934): 298 308. Yeh Wen - Hsin ed. Becoming Chinese: Passages to Modernity and Beyond . Berkeley: University of California Press, 2000. Yeh Wen - Hsing. The Alienated Academy: Higher Education in Republican China , Cambridge, Mass.: Published by Council on East Asian Studies, Harvard University and distributed by Harvard University Press, 1990. Yip Ka - che. Health and National Reconstruction in Nationalist China: The Development of Modern Health Services, 1928 - 1937 . Ann Arbor, MI : Association for Asian Studies, 1995. Yishibao . Young, Louise. Japan's Total Empire: Manchuria and the Culture of Wartime Imperialism . Berkeley: University of California Press, 1998. Yu Jianxing , The China Review 12, no. 2 (2012): 111 - 140. Journal of Hubei University of Economics Humanities and Social Sciences 9, no. 6 (2012): 16 - 7. 322 Zhang, Xiantao. The Origins of the Modern Chinese Press: The Influence of the Protestant Missionary Press in Late Qing China . London: Routledge, 2007. Zhang, Xiaobo. "Merchant Associational Activism in Early Twentieth - Century China: The Tianjin General Chamber of Commerce, 1904 - 1928." PhD diss. , Columbia University, 1995. Zhang Xuejun - 1937) [Commercial Association of Zhili Province and Rural Social s hifan d axue, z hongguo j in x iandaishi, 2007. Zhang Xuejun , and Sun Bingfang. Zhili shanghui yu xiangcun s hehui j ingji [The Zhili Chamber of Commerce and Rural Society and Economy 1903 - 1937]. Beijing: Renmin Chubanshe, 2010. Zheng Tiantian. Red lights: The Lives of Sex Workers in Post Socialist China . Minneapolis: University of Minnesota Press, 2009. Zhili Tianjin jingchating shuizai jizhen chu zheng xin lu, chengbao zhe gao #UAŒ . [Zhili Tianjin Police Department Emergency Flood Relief Record, Draft Report] N o publisher , 1917. Zhou Qiuguang. Xiong Xiling yu cishan jiaoyu shiye [Xiong Xiling and the Cause of Philanthropic Education] Changsha : Hunan jiaoyu chubanshe, 1991. Zhuanniankao .